Annual Statements Open main menu

Toll Brothers, Inc. - Annual Report: 2012 (Form 10-K)




UNITED STATES SECURITIES AND EXCHANGE COMMISSION
Washington, D.C. 20549
FORM 10-K
x
 
ANNUAL REPORT PURSUANT TO SECTION 13 OR 15(d) OF THE SECURITIES EXCHANGE ACT OF 1934
 
 
For the fiscal year ended October 31, 2012
 
 
or
o
 
TRANSITION REPORT PURSUANT TO SECTION 13 OR 15(d) OF THE SECURITIES EXCHANGE ACT of 1934
 
 
For the transition period from           to
Commission file number 1-9186
TOLL BROTHERS, INC.
(Exact name of Registrant as specified in its charter)
Delaware
23-2416878
(State or other jurisdiction of
I.R.S. Employer
incorporation or organization)
Identification No.)
250 Gibraltar Road, Horsham, Pennsylvania
19044
(Address of principal executive offices)
(Zip Code)
Registrant’s telephone number, including area code
(215) 938-8000
Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(b) of the Act:
Title of each class
 
Name of each exchange on which registered
Common Stock (par value $.01)*
 
New York Stock Exchange
Guarantee of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. 4.95% Senior Notes due 2014
 
New York Stock Exchange
Guarantee of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. 5.15% Senior Notes due 2015
 
New York Stock Exchange
* Includes associated Right to Purchase Series A Junior Participating Preferred Stock
 
 
    
Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(g) of the Act:    None

Indicate by check mark if the Registrant is a well-known seasoned issuer, as defined in Rule 405 of the Securities Act.    Yes x No o
Indicate by check mark if the Registrant is not required to file reports pursuant to Section 13 or 15(d) of the Securities Act. Yes o No x
Indicate by check mark whether the Registrant (1) has filed all reports required to be filed by Section 13 or 15(d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934 during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the Registrant was required to file such reports), and (2) has been subject to such filing requirements for the past 90 days. Yes x No o
Indicate by check mark whether the registrant has submitted electronically and posted on its corporate Web site, if any, every Interactive Data File required to be submitted and posted pursuant to Rule 405 of Regulation S-T (§232.405 of this chapter) during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the registrant was required to submit and post such files). Yes x No o
Indicate by check mark if disclosure of delinquent filers pursuant to Item 405 of Regulation S-K (§229.405 of this chapter) is not contained herein, and will not be contained, to the best of Registrant’s knowledge, in definitive proxy or information statements incorporated by reference in Part III of this Form 10-K or any amendment to this Form 10-K. x
Indicate by check mark whether the registrant is a large accelerated filer, an accelerated filer, a non-accelerated filer or a smaller reporting company. See the definitions of “large accelerated filer, “accelerated filer” and “smaller reporting company” in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act. (Check one):
Large accelerated filer x
 
Accelerated filer o
 
Non-accelerated filer o
 
Smaller reporting company o
 
 
(Do not check if a smaller reporting company)
 
 
Indicate by check mark whether the Registrant is a shell company (as defined in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act). Yes o No x
As of April 30, 2012, the aggregate market value of the Common Stock held by non-affiliates (all persons other than executive officers and directors of Registrant) of the Registrant was approximately $3,797,126,000.
As of December 24, 2012, there were approximately 169,041,000 shares of Common Stock outstanding.
Documents Incorporated by Reference: Portions of the proxy statement of Toll Brothers, Inc. with respect to the 2013 Annual Meeting of Stockholders, scheduled to be held on March 13, 2012, are incorporated by reference into Part III of this report.










TABLE OF CONTENTS
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
ITEM 4. MINE SAFETY DISCLOSURES
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 





PART I
ITEM 1. BUSINESS
General
Toll Brothers, Inc., a Delaware corporation formed in May 1986, began doing business through predecessor entities in 1967. When this report uses the words “we,” “us,” “our,” and the “Company,” they refer to Toll Brothers, Inc. and its subsidiaries, unless the context otherwise requires. References herein to “fiscal 2012,” “fiscal 2011,” “fiscal 2010,” “fiscal 2009,” and “fiscal 2008” refer to our fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, October 31, 2011, October 31, 2010, October 31, 2009, and October 31, 2008, respectively. References herein to “fiscal 2013” refer to our fiscal year ending October 31, 2013.
We design, build, market and arrange financing for detached and attached homes in luxury residential communities. We are also involved, directly and through joint ventures, in projects where we are building or converting existing rental apartment buildings into, high-, mid- and low-rise luxury homes. We are also developing, through joint ventures, a high-rise luxury condominium/hotel project and a for-rent luxury apartment complex. We cater to move-up, empty-nester, active-adult, age-qualified and second-home buyers in the United States. At October 31, 2012, we were operating in 19 states.

In recognition of our achievements, we have received numerous awards from national, state and local home builder publications and associations. In 2012, we were named Builder of the Year by Professional Builder Magazine. We are the only two-time recipient of this award.
Our traditional communities are generally located on land we have either acquired and developed or acquired fully-approved and, in some cases, improved. We also operate through a number of joint ventures. At October 31, 2012, we were operating in the following major suburban and urban residential markets:
Philadelphia, Pennsylvania metropolitan area
Lehigh Valley area of Pennsylvania
Central and northern New Jersey
Virginia and Maryland suburbs of Washington, D.C.
Baltimore, Maryland metropolitan area
Eastern Shore of Maryland and Delaware
Richmond, Virginia metropolitan area
Boston, Massachusetts metropolitan area
Fairfield, Hartford, New Haven and New London Counties, Connecticut
Westchester, Dutchess, Ulster and Saratoga Counties, New York
Boroughs of Manhattan and Brooklyn in New York City
Los Angeles, California metropolitan area
San Francisco Bay, Sacramento and San Jose areas of northern California
San Diego and Palm Springs, California areas
Phoenix, Arizona metropolitan area
Raleigh and Charlotte, North Carolina metropolitan areas
Dallas, San Antonio and Houston, Texas metropolitan areas
Southeast and southwest coasts and the Jacksonville and Orlando areas of Florida
Las Vegas and Reno, Nevada metropolitan areas
Detroit, Michigan metropolitan area
Chicago, Illinois metropolitan area
Denver, Colorado metropolitan area

1



Minneapolis/St. Paul, Minnesota metropolitan area, and
Seattle, Washington metropolitan area
We operate our own land development, architectural, engineering, mortgage, title, landscaping, security monitoring, lumber distribution, house component assembly, and manufacturing operations. We also develop, own and operate golf courses and country clubs associated with several of our master planned communities. We have investments in a number of joint ventures to develop land for the sole use of the venture participants, including ourselves, and to develop land for sale to the joint venture participants and to unrelated builders. We are a participant in joint ventures with unrelated parties to develop luxury condominium projects, including for-sale residential units and commercial space, a single master planned community, and a high-rise luxury for-sale condominium/hotel project. In addition, we formed Toll Brothers Realty Trust (“Trust”) and Toll Brothers Realty Trust II (“Trust II”) to invest in commercial real estate opportunities. In fiscal 2010, we formed Gibraltar Capital and Asset Management (“Gibraltar”) to invest in distressed real estate opportunities, which is different from our traditional home building operations.
We believe that, in fiscal 2012, the housing market began to recover from the significant slowdown that started in the fourth quarter of our fiscal year end October 31, 2005. During fiscal 2012, we and many of the other public home builders have seen a strong recovery in the number of new sales contracts signed. Our net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, increased nearly 50% in the number of net contracts signed and 59% in the value of net contracts signed. Although the number and value of fiscal 2012 net contracts signed increased over fiscal 2011, they were still significantly below what we recorded in fiscal 2005.
We are still affected by the slowdown in the housing market, which we believe started with a decline in consumer confidence, an overall softening of demand for new homes and an oversupply of homes available for sale. The slowdown was exacerbated by, among other things, a decline in the overall economy, increased unemployment, the large number of homes that were vacant and homes that had been foreclosed on due to the economic downturn, a fear of job loss, a decline in home prices and the resulting reduction in home equity, the inability of some of our home buyers, or some prospective buyers of their homes, to sell their current homes, the deterioration in the credit markets, and the direct and indirect impact of the turmoil in the mortgage loan market.

We believe our target customers generally have remained employed during this downturn. However, we believe many deferred their home buying decisions because of concerns over the direction of the economy, concerns over the direction of home prices, and their ability to sell their existing home. We believe that, as the national unemployment rate has declined and confidence improved, pent-up demand has begun to be released. Additionally, rising home prices, reduced inventory, and low mortgage rates have resulted in increased demand, although still below historical levels. We believe that the key to a full recovery in our business depends on these factors as well as a sustained stabilization of financial markets and the economy in general.
For information and analysis of recent trends in our operations and financial condition, see “Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations” in Item 7 of this Annual Report on Form 10-K (“Form 10-K”), and for financial information about our results of operations, assets, liabilities, stockholders’ equity and cash flows, see the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements and Notes thereto in Item 8 of this Form 10-K.
At October 31, 2012, we had 501 communities containing approximately 40,350 home sites that we owned or controlled through options. Of the 501 communities, 262 communities containing approximately 18,122 home sites were residential communities under construction (“current communities”) and 239, containing 22,228 home sites, were future communities. Of our 262 current communities, 224 were offering homes for sale, 35 were sold out but not all homes had been completed and delivered, and 3 communities were preparing to re-open. Of the 18,122 home sites in current communities, 15,553 were available for sale and 2,569 were under agreement of sale but not yet delivered (“backlog”). We expect to be selling from 225 to 255 communities by October 31, 2013. Of the approximately 40,350 total home sites that we owned or controlled through options at October 31, 2012, we owned approximately 31,327 and controlled approximately 9,023 through options. Included in the 239 future communities are 39 communities containing 2,832 home sites that had previously been open but that we shut down due to the slowdown in the housing market.
At October 31, 2012, we were offering detached homes in 175 communities at prices, excluding customized options, lot premiums and sales incentives, generally ranging from $195,000 to $1,883,000 with some homes offered at prices higher than $1,883,000. During fiscal 2012, we delivered 2,128 detached homes at an average base price of approximately $537,400. On average, our detached home buyers added approximately 23.1%, or $124,000 per home, in customized options and lot premiums to the base price of detached homes we delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to 21.8% or $124,000 per home in fiscal 2011 and 24.3% or $145,000 in fiscal 2010.

2



At October 31, 2012, we were offering attached homes in 49 communities at prices, excluding customized options, lot premiums and sales incentives, generally ranging from $165,000 to $982,000, with some units offered at prices higher than $982,000. During fiscal 2012, we delivered 1,158 attached homes at an average base price of approximately $477,000. On average, our attached home buyers added approximately 9.4%, or $45,000 per home, in customized options and lot premiums to the base price of attached homes we delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to 12.6% or $52,000 per home in fiscal 2011 and 9.7% or $45,700 in fiscal 2010.
We had a backlog of $1.67 billion (2,569 homes) at October 31, 2012 and $981.1 million (1,667 homes) at October 31, 2011. Of the homes in backlog at October 31, 2012, approximately 96% are scheduled to be delivered by October 31, 2013.
Because of the length of time that it takes to obtain the necessary approvals on a property, complete the land improvements on it, and deliver a home after a home buyer signs an agreement of sale, we are subject to many risks. We attempt, where possible, to reduce certain risks by controlling land for future development through options (also referred to herein as “land purchase contracts” or “option and purchase agreements”), thus allowing the necessary governmental approvals to be obtained before acquiring title to the land; generally commencing construction of a detached home only after executing an agreement of sale and receiving a substantial down payment from the buyer; and using subcontractors to perform home construction and land development work on a fixed-price basis. Our risk reduction strategy of generally not commencing the construction of a detached home until we have an agreement of sale with a buyer was implemented prior to the 2006-2011 downturn in the housing market, but, due to the number of cancellations of agreements of sale that we had during fiscal 2007, 2008 and 2009, many of which were for homes on which we had commenced construction, the number of homes under construction in detached communities for which we did not have an agreement of sale increased from our historical levels. With our contract cancellation rates returning to the levels we experienced prior to the downturn in the housing market and the sale of these units, we have reduced the number of unsold units to more historical levels. In addition, over the past several years, the number of our attached-home communities has grown, resulting in an increase in the number of unsold units under construction.
Acquisition
In November 2011, we acquired substantially all of the assets of CamWest Development LLC (“CamWest”) for approximately $144.7 million in cash. The assets acquired were primarily inventory. CamWest develops a variety of home types, including luxury detached homes, condominiums, and townhomes throughout the Seattle, Washington metropolitan area, primarily in King and Snohomish Counties. CamWest’s homes typically sell from the mid $300,000’s to over $600,000. As part of the acquisition, we assumed contracts to deliver approximately 29 homes with an aggregate value of $13.7 million. The assets we acquired included approximately 1,245 home sites owned and 254 home sites controlled through land purchase agreements. This acquisition increased our selling community count by 15 communities at the date of acquisition. In fiscal 2012, our CamWest operations delivered 201 homes and produced revenues of $99.7 million.
Our Communities
Our communities are generally located in affluent suburban areas near major highways providing access to major cities. We also operate in the affluent urban markets of Hoboken and Jersey City, New Jersey; New York City, New York; and Philadelphia, Pennsylvania. The following table lists the 19 states in which we were operating at October 31, 2012 and the fiscal years in which we or our predecessors commenced operations:
State
 
Fiscal year of entry
 
State
 
Fiscal year of entry
Pennsylvania
 
1967
 
Texas
 
1995
New Jersey
 
1982
 
Florida
 
1995
Delaware
 
1987
 
Arizona
 
1995
Massachusetts
 
1988
 
Nevada
 
1998
Maryland
 
1988
 
Illinois
 
1998
Virginia
 
1992
 
Michigan
 
1999
Connecticut
 
1992
 
Colorado
 
2001
New York
 
1993
 
Minnesota
 
2005
California
 
1994
 
Washington
 
2012
North Carolina
 
1994
 
 
 
 
We market our high-quality homes to “upscale” luxury home buyers, generally comprised of those persons who have previously owned a principal residence and who are seeking to buy a larger or more desirable home — the so-called “move-up”

3



market. We believe our reputation as a developer of homes for this market enhances our competitive position with respect to the sale of our smaller, more moderately priced, detached homes, as well as our attached homes.
We also market to the 50+ year-old “empty-nester” market, which we believe has strong growth potential. We have developed a number of home designs with features such as one-story living and first-floor master bedroom suites, as well as communities with recreational amenities such as golf courses, marinas, pool complexes, country clubs and recreation centers that we believe appeal to this category of home buyers. We have integrated certain of these designs and features in some of our other home types and communities.
We develop active-adult, age-qualified communities for households in which at least one member is 55 years of age. As of October 31, 2012, we were selling from 20 such communities and expect to open additional age-qualified communities during the next few years. Of the value and number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, approximately 8% and 10%, respectively, were in active-adult communities; in fiscal 2011, approximately 10% and 13%, respectively, were in such communities. In fiscal 2010, approximately 11% and 15% of the value and number of net contracts signed were in active-adult communities.
In order to serve a growing market of affluent move-up families, empty-nesters and young professionals seeking to live in or close to major cities, we have developed and are developing a number of high-density, high-, mid- and low-rise urban luxury communities. These communities, which we are currently developing or planning on our own or through joint ventures, are located in Dublin, California; Chicago, Illinois suburbs; North Bethesda, Maryland; Hoboken, New Jersey; the boroughs of Manhattan and Brooklyn, New York; Philadelphia, Pennsylvania and its suburbs.
We believe that the demographics of the move-up, empty-nester, active-adult, age-qualified and second-home upscale markets will provide us with the potential for growth in the coming decade. According to the U.S. Census Bureau, the number of households earning $100,000 or more (in constant 2011 dollars) at September 2012 stood at 25.4 million, or approximately 17.3% of all U.S. households. This group has grown at three times the rate of increase of all U.S. households since 1980. According to Harvard University's June 2012 "The State of the Nation's Housing," the growth and aging of the current population, assuming the economic recovery is sustained over the next few years, supports the addition of about one million new household formations per year during the next decade.

According to the U.S. Census Bureau, during the period 1970 through 2007, total housing starts in the United States averaged approximately 1.26 million per year, while in the period 2008 through 2011, total housing starts averaged approximately 0.66 million per year. In addition, based on the trend of household formations in relation to population growth during the period 2000 through 2007, the number of households formations formed in the four year period of 2008 through 2011 was approximately 2.3 million less than would have been expected.
We develop individual stand-alone communities as well as multi-product, master planned communities. We currently have 28 master planned communities. Our master planned communities, many of which include golf courses and other country club-type amenities, enable us to offer multiple home types and sizes to a broad range of move-up, empty-nester, active-adult and second-home buyers. We seek to realize efficiencies from shared common costs, such as land development and infrastructure, over the several communities within the master planned community. We currently have master planned communities in Arizona, California, Connecticut, Florida, Illinois, Maryland, Massachusetts, Michigan, Nevada, North Carolina, Pennsylvania, Virginia and Washington.
Each of our detached-home communities offers several home plans, with the opportunity for home buyers to select various exterior styles. We design each community to fit existing land characteristics. We strive to achieve diversity among architectural styles within a community by offering a variety of house models and several exterior design options for each model, preserving existing trees and foliage whenever practicable, and curving street layouts to allow relatively few homes to be seen from any vantage point. Normally, homes of the same type or color may not be built next to each other. Our communities have attractive entrances with distinctive signage and landscaping. We believe that our added attention to community detail avoids a “development” appearance and gives each community a diversified neighborhood appearance that enhances home values.
Our traditional attached home communities generally offer one- to four-story homes, provide for limited exterior options and often include commonly owned recreational facilities such as clubhouses, playing fields, swimming pools and tennis courts.
Our Homes
In most of our detached home communities, we offer a number of different house floor plans, each with several substantially different architectural styles. In addition, the exterior of each basic floor plan may be varied further by the use of stone, stucco, brick or siding. Our traditional attached home communities generally offer several different floor plans with two, three or four

4



bedrooms.
We offer some of the same basic home designs in similar communities. However, we are continuously developing new designs to replace or augment existing ones to ensure that our homes reflect current consumer tastes. We use our own architectural staff and also engage unaffiliated architectural firms to develop new designs. During the past year, we introduced 68 new detached models, 16 new attached models and a significant number of designs in five of our high- and mid-rise communities.
In all of our communities, a wide selection of options is available to home buyers for additional charges. The number and complexity of options typically increase with the size and base selling price of our homes. Major options include additional garages, extra fireplaces, guest suites, finished lofts, and other additional rooms. On average, options purchased by our detached home buyers, including lot premiums, added approximately 23.1%, or $124,000 per home, to the base price of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to 21.8%, or $124,000 per home in fiscal 2011 and 24.3% or $145,000 per home in fiscal 2010. Options purchased by our attached home buyers, including lot premiums, added, on average, approximately 9.4%, or $45,000 per home, to the base price of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to 12.6%, or $52,000 per home in fiscal 2011 and 9.7% or $45,700 per home in fiscal 2010.
As a result of our wide product and geographic diversity, we have a wide range of base sales prices. The general range of base sales prices for our different lines of homes at October 31, 2012, was as follows:
Detached homes
 
 
 
Move-up
$
215,000

to
$
860,000

Executive
200,000

to
915,000

Estate
334,000

to
1,883,000

Active-adult, age-qualified
195,000

to
583,000

Attached homes
 
 
 
Flats
$
182,000

to
$
558,000

Townhomes/Carriage homes
165,000

to
825,000

Active-adult, age-qualified
190,000

to
496,000

Mid-rise/high-rise
291,000

to
982,000

A number of projects that we are developing are offering units at prices substantially in excess of those listed above.
At October 31, 2012, we were selling from 224 communities, compared to 215 communities at October 31, 2011 and 195 communities at October 31, 2010. We expect to be selling from 225 to 255 communities at October 31, 2013. In addition, at October 31, 2012, we had 42 communities that were temporarily closed due to market conditions. We currently expect to reopen 3 of these communities prior to October 31, 2013.
The following table summarizes certain information with respect to our residential communities under development at October 31, 2012:
Geographic segment
 
Total number of communities
 
Number of selling communities
 
Homes approved
 
Homes closed
 
Homes under contract but not closed
 
Home sites available
North
 
68

 
58

 
9,812

 
4,454

 
655

 
4,703

Mid-Atlantic
 
72

 
59

 
11,197

 
5,382

 
658

 
5,157

South
 
67

 
59

 
7,485

 
2,763

 
749

 
3,973

West
 
55

 
48

 
4,544

 
2,317

 
507

 
1,720

Total
 
262

 
224

 
33,038

 
14,916

 
2,569

 
15,553

At October 31, 2012, significant site improvements had not yet commenced on approximately 5,400 of the 15,553 available home sites. Of the 15,553 available home sites, 948 were not yet owned by us but were controlled through options.
Of our 262 communities under development at October 31, 2012, 224 were offering homes for sale, 35 were sold out but not all homes had been completed and delivered, and 3 communities were preparing to re-open. Of the 224 communities in which homes were being offered for sale at October 31, 2012, 175 were detached home communities and 49 were attached home communities. At October 31, 2012, we had 523 homes (exclusive of model homes) under construction or completed but not under contract, of which 188 were in detached home communities and 335 were in attached home communities. In addition, we

5



had 155 units that were temporarily being held as rental units. Of the 335 homes under construction or completed but not under contract in attached home communities at October 31, 2012, 301 were in high- and mid-rise projects and 34 were in two communities that we acquired and are converting to condominium units.
At the end of each fiscal quarter, we review the profitability of each of our operating communities. For those communities operating below certain profitability thresholds, we estimate the expected future cash flow for each of those communities. For each community whose estimated cash flow is not sufficient to recover its carrying value, we estimate the fair value of the community in accordance with U.S. generally accepted accounting principles (“GAAP”) and recognize an impairment charge for the difference between the estimated fair value of the community and its carrying value. In fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, we recognized impairment charges related to operating communities of $13.1 million, $17.1 million and $53.5 million, respectively.
For more information regarding revenues, gross contracts signed, contract cancellations, net contracts signed, and sales incentives provided on units delivered; (loss) income before income taxes; and assets by geographic segment; see “Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operation — Geographic Segments” in Item 7 of this Form 10-K and Note 17 to the Consolidated Financial Statements in Item 15 of this Form 10-K.
Land Policy
Before entering into an agreement to purchase a land parcel, we complete extensive comparative studies and analyses on detailed internally-designed forms that assist us in evaluating the acquisition. Historically, we have attempted to enter into option agreements to purchase land for future communities. However, in order to obtain better terms or prices, or due to competitive pressures, we acquire property outright from time to time. We have also entered into several joint ventures with other builders or developers to develop land for the use of the joint venture participants or for sale to outside third parties. In addition, we have, at times, acquired the underlying mortgage on a property and subsequently obtained title to that property.
We generally attempt, where possible, to enter into agreements to purchase land, referred to in this Form 10-K as “land purchase contracts,” “purchase agreements,” “options” or “option agreements,” on a non-recourse basis, thereby limiting our financial exposure to the amounts expended in obtaining any necessary governmental approvals, the costs incurred in the planning and design of the community and, in some cases, some or all of our deposit. The use of these agreements may increase the price of land that we eventually acquire, but reduces our risk by allowing us to obtain the necessary development approvals before acquiring the land or allowing us to delay the acquisition to a later date. Historically, as approvals were obtained, the value of the options, purchase agreements and land generally increased. However, in any given time period, this may not happen. We have the ability to extend some of these options for varying periods of time, in some cases by making an additional payment and, in other cases, without making any additional payment. Our purchase agreements are typically subject to numerous conditions including, but not limited to, the ability to obtain necessary governmental approvals for the proposed community. Our deposit under an agreement may be returned to us if all approvals are not obtained, although pre-development costs may not be recoverable. We generally have the right to cancel any of our agreements to purchase land by forfeiture of some or all of the deposits we have made pursuant to the agreement. We are currently evaluating many opportunities to acquire distressed properties from various sources. We believe that, in general, we will not be able to purchase these distressed properties through the use of purchase options, but will be required to purchase them outright.
In response to the decline in market conditions during the downturn in the housing industry since 2006, we have re-evaluated and renegotiated or canceled many of our land purchase contracts. In addition, we have sold, and may continue to sell, certain parcels of land that we have identified as non-strategic. As a result, we reduced our home sites controlled from a high of approximately 91,200 at April 30, 2006 to approximately 40,350 at October 31, 2012.
Based on our experience during prior downturns in the housing industry, we believe that attractive land acquisition opportunities arise in difficult times for those builders that have the financial strength to take advantage of them. In the current environment, we believe our strong balance sheet, liquidity, access to capital, broad geographic presence, diversified product line, experienced personnel and national brand name all position us well for such opportunities now and in the future. Based on our belief that the housing market has begun to recover, the increased attractiveness of land available for purchase and the revival of demand in certain areas, we have begun to increase our land positions. During the twelve-month period ended October 31, 2012 and 2011, we acquired control of approximately 6,100 home sites (net of options terminated) and, approximately 5,300 home sites (net of options terminated), respectively. At October 31, 2012, we controlled approximately 40,350 home sites, as compared to approximately 37,500 home sites at October 31, 2011 and 34,900 home sites at October 31, 2010. In addition, in November 2012, we entered into an agreement with one of our joint venture partners to acquire approximately 800 lots from the joint venture.

6



Our ability to continue development activities over the long-term will be dependent, among other things, upon a suitable economic environment and our continued ability to locate and enter into options or agreements to purchase land, obtain governmental approvals for suitable parcels of land, and consummate the acquisition and complete the development of such land.
The following is a summary of home sites for future communities that we either owned or controlled through purchase agreements at October 31, 2012, as distinguished from those communities currently under development:
Geographic segment
 
Number of communities
 
Number of home sites
North
 
51

 
4,722

Mid-Atlantic
 
85

 
8,599

South
 
40

 
4,337

West
 
63

 
4,570

 
 
239

 
22,228

Of the 22,228 planned home sites at October 31, 2012, we owned 14,153 and controlled 8,075 through options and purchase agreements. At October 31, 2012, the aggregate purchase price of land parcels subject to option and purchase agreements in operating communities and future communities was approximately $747.0 million (including $4.1 million of land to be acquired from joint ventures in which we have invested). Of the $747.0 million of land purchase commitments, we paid or deposited $42.9 million and, if we acquire all of these land parcels, we will be required to pay an additional $704.1 million. The purchases of these land parcels are scheduled over the next several years. We have additional land parcels under option that have been excluded from the aforementioned aggregate purchase price since we do not believe that we will complete the purchase of these land parcels and no additional funds will be required from us to terminate these contracts; these land parcels have either been written off or written down to the estimated amount that we expect to recover on them when the contracts are terminated. In addition, in November 2012, we entered into an agreement with a joint venture partner to acquire approximately 800 lots from the joint venture.
We evaluate all of the land owned or optioned for future communities on an ongoing basis for continued economic and market feasibility. During each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, such feasibility analyses resulted in approximately $1.7 million, $34.8 million and $61.8 million, respectively, of capitalized costs related to land owned or optioned for future communities being charged to cost of revenues because such costs were no longer deemed to be recoverable or exceeded the properties’ fair value.
We have a substantial amount of land currently under control for which approvals have been obtained or are being sought. We devote significant resources to locating suitable land for future development and obtaining the required approvals on land under our control. There can be no assurance that the necessary development approvals will be secured for the land currently under our control or for land which we may acquire control of in the future or that, upon obtaining such development approvals, we will elect to complete the purchases of land under option or complete the development of land that we own. We generally have been successful in obtaining governmental approvals in the past. Based upon our current decreased level of business, we believe that we have an adequate supply of land in our existing communities and proposed communities (assuming that all properties are developed) to maintain our operations at current levels for several years.
Community Development
We typically expend considerable effort in developing a concept for each community, which includes determining the size, style and price range of the homes; the layout of the streets and individual home sites; and the overall community design. After the necessary governmental subdivision and other approvals have been obtained, which may take several years, we improve the land by clearing and grading it; installing roads, underground utility lines and recreational amenities; erecting distinctive entrance structures; and staking out individual home sites.
Each community is managed by a project manager. Working with sales staff, construction managers, marketing personnel and, when required, other in-house and outside professionals such as accountants, engineers, architects and legal counsel, a project manager is responsible for supervising and coordinating the various developmental steps such as land approval, land acquisition, marketing, selling, construction and customer service, and monitoring the progress of work and controlling expenditures. Major decisions regarding each community are made in consultation with senior members of our management team.

7



The most significant variable affecting the timing of our revenue stream, other than housing demand, is the opening of the community for sale, which generally occurs shortly after receipt of final land regulatory approvals. Receipt of approvals permits us to begin the process of obtaining executed sales contracts from home buyers. Although our sales and construction activities vary somewhat by season, which can affect the timing of closings, any such seasonal effect is relatively insignificant compared to the effect of the timing of receipt of final regulatory approvals, the opening of the community and the subsequent timing of closings. In the recent housing slowdown, we have delayed the opening of new communities and temporarily shut down a number of operating communities to reduce operating expenses and conserve cash.
We act as a general contractor for most of our projects. Subcontractors perform all home construction and land development work, generally under fixed-price contracts. We purchase most of the materials we use to build our homes and in our land development activities directly from the manufacturers or producers. We generally have multiple sources for the materials we purchase and we have not experienced significant delays due to unavailability of necessary materials. See “Manufacturing/Distribution Facilities” in Item 2 of this Form 10-K.
Our construction managers coordinate subcontracting activities and supervise all aspects of construction work and quality control. One of the ways in which we seek to achieve home buyer satisfaction is by providing our construction managers with incentive compensation arrangements based upon each home buyer’s satisfaction, as expressed by the buyers’ responses on pre- and post-closing questionnaires.
We maintain insurance, subject to deductibles and self-insured amounts, to protect us against various risks associated with our activities, including, among others, general liability, “all-risk” property, construction defects, workers’ compensation, automobile and employee fidelity. We accrue for our expected costs associated with the deductibles and self-insured amounts.
Marketing and Sales
We believe that our marketing strategy, which emphasizes our more expensive “Estate” and “Executive” lines of homes, has enhanced our reputation as a builder-developer of high-quality upscale housing. We believe this reputation results in greater demand for all of our lines of homes. We generally include attractive decorative features such as chair rails, crown moldings, dentil moldings, vaulted and coffered ceilings and other aesthetic elements, even in our less expensive homes, based on our belief that this additional construction expense enhances our image and improves our marketing and sales effort.
In determining the prices for our homes, we utilize, in addition to management’s extensive experience, an internally developed value analysis program that compares our homes with homes offered by other builders in each local marketing area. In our application of this program, we assign a positive or negative dollar value to differences between our product features and those of our competitors, such as house and community amenities, location and reputation.
We expend great effort and cost in designing and decorating our model homes, which play an important role in our marketing. In our models, we attempt to create an attractive atmosphere, which may include bread baking in the oven, fires burning in fireplaces, and music playing in the background. Interior decorating varies among the models and is carefully selected to reflect the lifestyles of prospective buyers.
We typically have a sales office in each community that is staffed by our own sales personnel. Sales personnel are generally compensated with both salary and commission. A significant portion of our sales is also derived from the introduction of customers to our communities by local cooperating realtors.
We advertise in newspapers, in other local and regional publications, and on billboards. We also use color brochures to market our communities. The internet is also an important resource we use in marketing and providing information to our customers. Visitors to our web site, www.tollbrothers.com, can obtain detailed information regarding our communities and homes across the country, take panoramic or video tours of our homes and design their own home based upon our available floor plans and options.
Due to the weak market conditions over the past several years and in an effort to promote the sales of homes, including the significant number of speculative homes that we had due to sales contract cancellations, we increased the amount of sales incentives offered to home buyers. These incentives varied by type and amount on a community-by-community and home-by-home basis. As demand in the housing market has strengthened, we have been reducing the amount of sales incentives offered to our home buyers.
All of our homes are sold under our limited warranty as to workmanship and mechanical equipment. Many homes also come with a limited ten-year warranty as to structural integrity.

8



We have a two-step sales process. The first step takes place when a potential home buyer visits one of our communities and decides to purchase one of our homes, at which point the home buyer signs a non-binding deposit agreement and provides a small, refundable deposit. This deposit will reserve, for a short period of time, the home site or unit that the home buyer has selected and locks in the base price of the home. Because these deposit agreements are non-binding, they are not recorded as signed contracts, nor are they recorded in backlog. Deposit rates are tracked on a weekly basis to help us monitor the strength or weakness in demand in each of our communities. If demand for homes in a particular community is strong, senior management determines whether the base selling prices in that community should be increased. If demand for the homes in a particular community is weak, we determine whether or not sales incentives and/or discounts on home prices should be adjusted.
The second step in the sales process occurs when we actually sign a binding agreement of sale with the home buyer and the home buyer gives us a cash down payment which is generally non-refundable. Cash down payments currently average approximately 8.1% of the total purchase price of a home, although, historically, they have averaged approximately 7% of the total purchase price of a home. Between the time that the home buyer signs the non-binding deposit agreement and the binding agreement of sale, he or she is required to complete a financial questionnaire that gives us the ability to evaluate whether the home buyer has the financial resources necessary to purchase the home. If we determine that the home buyer is not financially qualified, we will not enter into an agreement of sale with the home buyer. During fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, our customers signed gross contracts for $2.67 billion (4,341 homes), $1.71 billion (2,965 homes) and $1.57 billion (2,789 homes) , respectively. During fiscal 2012, fiscal 2011 and fiscal 2010, our home buyers canceled home purchase contracts with a value of $107.3 million (182 homes), $102.8 million (181 homes) and $98.3 million (184 homes), respectively. Contract cancellations in a fiscal year include all contracts canceled in that fiscal year, whether signed in that fiscal year or signed in prior fiscal years. When we report net contracts signed, the number and value of contracts signed are reported net of all cancellations occurring during the reporting period, whether signed in that reporting period or in a prior period. Only outstanding agreements of sale that have been signed by both the home buyer and us as of the end of the period for which we are reporting are included in backlog. As a result of cancellations, we retained $3.2 million, $2.1 million and $11.2 million of customer deposits in fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, respectively. These retained deposits are included in other income-net in our Consolidated Statements of Operations.
While we try to avoid selling homes to speculators and generally do not build detached homes without first having a signed agreement of sale, we have been impacted by an overall increase in the supply of homes available for sale in many markets due primarily to the large number of homes that are or will be available for sale from increased foreclosures.
Our mortgage subsidiary provides mortgage financing for a portion of our home closings. Our mortgage subsidiary determines whether the home buyer qualifies for the mortgage he or she is seeking based upon information provided by the home buyer and other sources. For those home buyers that qualify, our mortgage subsidiary provides the home buyer with a mortgage commitment that specifies the terms and conditions of a proposed mortgage loan based upon then-current market conditions. Information about the number and amount of loans funded by our mortgage subsidiary is contained in the table below.
Fiscal year
 
Total
Toll Brothers, Inc. settlements (a)
 
TBI Mortgage Company
financed settlements*(b)
 
Gross
capture rate (b/a)
 
Amount
financed (in thousands)
2012
 
3,286

 
1,572

 
47.8%
 
$
585,732

2011
 
2,611

 
1,361

 
52.1%
 
$
508,880

2010
 
2,642

 
1,451

 
54.9%
 
$
530,575

2009
 
2,965

 
1,341

 
45.2%
 
$
489,269

*
TBI Mortgage Company financed settlements exclude brokered and referred loans which amounted to approximately 10.7%, 11.5%, 5.8% and 5.0% of our closings in 2012, 2011, 2010 and 2009, respectively.
Prior to the actual closing of the home and funding of the mortgage, the home buyer will lock in an interest rate based upon the terms of the commitment. At the time of rate lock, our mortgage subsidiary agrees to sell the proposed mortgage loan to one of several outside recognized mortgage financing institutions (“investors”) who are willing to honor the terms and conditions, including the interest rate, committed to the home buyer. We believe that these investors have adequate financial resources to honor their commitments to our mortgage subsidiary. At October 31, 2012, our mortgage subsidiary was committed to fund $568.0 million of mortgage loans. Of these commitments, $111.2 million, as well as $85.0 million of mortgage loans receivable, have “locked-in” interest rates. Our mortgage subsidiary funds its commitments through a combination of its own capital, capital provided from us, its loan facility and from the sale of mortgage loans to various investors. Our mortgage

9



subsidiary has commitments from investors to acquire $191.9 million of these locked-in loans and receivables. Our home buyers have not locked in the interest rate on the remaining $456.8 million.
There has been significant media attention given to mortgage put-backs, a practice by which a buyer of a mortgage loan tries to recoup losses from the loan originator. We do not believe this is a material issue for our mortgage subsidiary. Of the approximately 15,700 loans sold by our mortgage subsidiary since November 1, 2004, only 31 have been the subject of either actual indemnification payments or take-backs or contingent liability loss provisions related thereto. We believe that this is due to (i) our typical home buyer’s financial position and sophistication, (ii) on average, our home buyers who use mortgage financing to purchase a home pay approximately 30% of the purchase price in cash, (iii) our general practice of not originating certain loan types such as option adjustable rate mortgages and down payment assistance products, and our origination of few sub-prime and high loan-to-value/no documentation loans and (iv) our elimination, several years ago, of “early payment default” provisions from our agreements with our mortgage investors. In order for us to incur a loss, a mortgage buyer must demonstrate either (i) a material error on our part in issuing the mortgage or (ii) consumer fraud. In addition, the amount of any such loss would be reduced by any proceeds received on the disposition of the collateral associated with the mortgage.
The Dodd-Frank Wall Street Reform and Consumer Protection Act provides for a number of new requirements relating to residential mortgage lending practices, many of which require implementation by regulatory rule making. These include, among others, minimum standards for mortgages and related lender practices, the definitions and parameters of a Qualified Mortgage and a Qualified Residential Mortgage, future risk retention requirements, limitations on certain fees, prohibition of certain tying arrangements, and remedies for borrowers in foreclosure proceedings in the event that a lender violates fee limitations or minimum standards. The ultimate effect of such provisions on lending institutions, including our mortgage subsidiary, will depend on the rules that are ultimately promulgated.
Competition
The home building business is highly competitive and fragmented. We compete with numerous home builders of varying sizes, ranging from local to national in scope, some of which have greater sales and financial resources than we do. Sales of existing homes, whether by a homeowner or by a financial institution that has acquired a home through a foreclosure, also provide competition. We compete primarily on the basis of price, location, design, quality, service and reputation; however, we believe our financial stability, relative to most others in our industry, has become an increasingly favorable competitive factor as more home buyers focus on builder solvency.
We continue to see reduced competition from the small and mid-sized private builders that had been our primary competitors in the luxury market. We believe that many of these builders are no longer in business and that access to capital by the remaining ones is already severely constrained. We envision that there will be fewer and more selective lenders serving our industry as the market rebounds and those lenders likely will gravitate to the home building companies that offer them the greatest security, the strongest balance sheets and the broadest array of potential business opportunities. While some builders may re-emerge with new capital, the scarcity of attractive land is a further impediment to their re-emergence. We believe that this reduced competition, combined with attractive long-term demographics, will reward those well-capitalized builders that can persevere through the current challenging environment.
We believe that geographic and product diversification, access to lower-cost capital and strong demographics benefit those builders, like us, who can control land and persevere through the increasingly difficult regulatory approval process. We believe that these factors favor a large publicly traded home building company with the capital and expertise to control home sites and gain market share. We also believe that over the past five years, many builders and land developers reduced the number of home sites that were taken through the approval process. The process continues to be difficult and lengthy, and the political pressure from no-growth proponents continues to increase, but we believe our expertise in taking land through the approval process and our already-approved land positions will allow us to grow in the years to come as market conditions improve.
Regulation and Environmental Matters
We are subject to various local, state and federal statutes, ordinances, rules and regulations concerning zoning, building design, construction and similar matters, including local regulations that impose restrictive zoning and density requirements in order to limit the number of homes that can eventually be built within the boundaries of a particular property or locality. In a number of our markets, there has been an increase in state and local legislation authorizing the acquisition of land as dedicated open space, mainly by governmental, quasi-public and non-profit entities. In addition, we are subject to various licensing, registration and filing requirements in connection with the construction, advertisement and sale of homes in our communities. The impact of these laws has been to increase our overall costs, and may have delayed the opening of communities or caused us to conclude that development of particular communities would not be economically feasible, even if any or all necessary governmental approvals were obtained. See “Land Policy” in this Item 1. We also may be subject to periodic delays or may be precluded

10



entirely from developing communities due to building moratoriums in one or more of the areas in which we operate. Generally, such moratoriums relate to insufficient water or sewage facilities or inadequate road capacity.
In order to secure certain approvals in some areas, we may be required to provide affordable housing at below market rental or sales prices. The impact on us depends on how the various state and local governments in the areas in which we engage, or intend to engage, in development implement their programs for affordable housing. To date, these restrictions have not had a material impact on us.
We also are subject to a variety of local, state and federal statutes, ordinances, rules and regulations concerning protection of public health and the environment (“environmental laws”). The particular environmental laws that apply to any given community vary greatly according to the location and environmental condition of the site and the present and former uses of the site. Complying with these environmental laws may result in delays, may cause us to incur substantial compliance and other costs, and/or may prohibit or severely restrict development in certain environmentally sensitive regions or areas.
We maintain a policy of engaging independent environmental consultants to evaluate land for the potential of hazardous or toxic materials, wastes or substances before consummating an acquisition. Because we generally have obtained such assessments for the land we have purchased, we have not been significantly affected to date by the presence of such materials.
Our mortgage subsidiary is subject to various state and federal statutes, rules and regulations, including those that relate to licensing, lending operations and other areas of mortgage origination and financing. The impact of those statutes, rules and regulations can increase our home buyers’ cost of financing, increase our cost of doing business, as well as restrict our home buyers’ access to some types of loans.
Employees
At October 31, 2012, we employed 2,396 persons full-time. At October 31, 2012, we were subject to one collective bargaining agreement that covered approximately 2% of our employees. We consider our employee relations to be good.
Available Information
Our principal internet address is www.tollbrothers.com. We make our annual reports on Form 10-K, quarterly reports on Form 10-Q, current reports on Form 8-K, and any amendments to those reports filed or furnished pursuant to Section 13(a) or 15(d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934 available on our web site, free of charge, as soon as reasonably practicable after we electronically file such material with, or furnish it to, the Securities and Exchange Commission (“SEC”). The contents of our web site are not, however, a part of this Form 10-K.
Code of Ethics
The Company has adopted a Code of Ethics for Principal Executive Officer and Senior Financial Officers (“Code of Ethics”) that applies to the Company’s principal executive officer, principal financial officer, principal accounting officer, controller and persons performing similar functions designated by the Company’s Board of Directors. The Code of Ethics is available on the Company’s internet website at www.tollbrothers.com under “Investor Relations: Company Information: Corporate Governance.” If the Company were to amend or waive any provision of its Code of Ethics, the Company intends to satisfy its disclosure obligations with respect to any such waiver or amendment by posting such information on its internet website set forth above rather than by filing a Form 8-K.
FORWARD-LOOKING STATEMENTS
Certain information included in this report or in other materials we have filed or will file with the SEC (as well as information included in oral statements or other written statements made or to be made by us) contains or may contain forward-looking statements within the meaning of Section 27A of the Securities Act of 1933, as amended, and Section 21E of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, as amended. You can identify these statements by the fact that they do not relate to matters of strictly historical or factual nature and generally discuss or relate to estimates or other expectations regarding future events. They contain words such as “anticipate,” “estimate,” “expect,” “project,” “intend,” “plan,” “believe,” “may,” “can,” “could,” “might,” “should” and other words or phrases of similar meaning in connection with any discussion of future operating or financial performance. Such statements may include, but are not limited to, information related to: anticipated operating results; home deliveries; financial resources and condition; changes in revenues; changes in profitability; changes in margins; changes in accounting treatment; cost of revenues; selling, general and administrative expenses; interest expense; inventory write-downs; unrecognized tax benefits; anticipated tax refunds; sales paces and prices; effects of home buyer cancellations; growth and expansion; joint ventures in which we are involved; anticipated results from our investments in unconsolidated entities; the ability to acquire land and pursue real estate opportunities; the ability to gain approvals and open new communities; the ability

11



to sell homes and properties; the ability to deliver homes from backlog; the ability to secure materials and subcontractors; the ability to produce the liquidity and capital necessary to expand and take advantage of opportunities; and legal proceedings and claims.
From time to time, forward-looking statements also are included in other periodic reports on Forms 10-Q and 8-K, in press releases, in presentations, on our website and in other materials released to the public. Any or all of the forward-looking statements included in this report and in any other reports or public statements made by us are not guarantees of future performance and may turn out to be inaccurate. This can occur as a result of incorrect assumptions or as a consequence of known or unknown risks and uncertainties. Many factors mentioned in this report or in other reports or public statements made by us, such as government regulation and the competitive environment, will be important in determining our future performance. Consequently, actual results may differ materially from those that might be anticipated from our forward-looking statements.
Forward-looking statements speak only as of the date they are made. We undertake no obligation to publicly update any forward-looking statements, whether as a result of new information, future events or otherwise.
For a discussion of factors that we believe could cause our actual results to differ materially from expected and historical results see “Item 1A — Risk Factors” below. This discussion is provided as permitted by the Private Securities Litigation Reform Act of 1995, and all of our forward-looking statements are expressly qualified in their entirety by the cautionary statements contained or referenced in this section.
EXECUTIVE OFFICERS OF THE REGISTRANT
Information about our executive officers is incorporated by reference from Part III, Item 10 of this annual report.
ITEM 1A. RISK FACTORS
The home building industry has been in an extended period of slowdown. A further slowdown in the home building industry would likely further adversely affect our business, results of operations and financial condition.
The downturn in the home building industry, which we believe began in the fourth quarter of our fiscal 2005, has been one of the most severe in U.S. history. We believe we have seen the beginning of the recovery in fiscal 2012. The downturn, which we believe started with a decline in consumer confidence, a decline in home prices and an oversupply of homes available for sale, was exacerbated by, among other things, a decline in the overall economy, high unemployment, fear of job loss, volatility in the securities markets, the number of homes that are or will be available for sale due to foreclosures, an inability of home buyers to sell their current homes, a tightening of standards in the credit markets, and the direct and indirect impact of the turmoil in the mortgage loan market. All of these factors have contributed to the significant decline in the demand for new homes. Moreover, it is still unclear whether the government’s legislative and administrative measures aimed at restoring liquidity to the credit markets and providing relief to homeowners facing foreclosure have helped or will help to effectively stabilize prices and home values, or restore consumer confidence and increase demand in the home building industry.
As a result of this downturn, our sales and results of operations were adversely affected, we incurred significant inventory impairments and other write-offs, our gross margins declined significantly from historical levels, and we incurred substantial losses from operations, after write-offs, during fiscal 2011, 2010, 2009 and 2008. We cannot predict the continuation of the recovery, nor can we provide assurance that should the recovery not continue, our responses, or the government’s attempts to address the poor economic conditions will be successful. If the recovery does not continue or the poor economic conditions persist or worsen, they may adversely affect our results of operations and financial condition.
Adverse changes in economic conditions in markets where we conduct our operations and where prospective purchasers of our homes live could reduce the demand for homes and, as a result, could continue to adversely affect our results of operations and financial condition.
Additional adverse changes in economic conditions in markets where we conduct our operations and where prospective purchasers of our homes live have had and may continue to have a negative impact on our business. Adverse changes in employment levels, job growth, consumer confidence, interest rates and population growth, or an oversupply of homes for sale may reduce demand and depress prices for our homes and cause home buyers to cancel their agreements to purchase our homes. This, in turn, could continue to adversely affect our results of operations and financial condition.

12



Increases in cancellations of existing agreements of sale could have an adverse effect on our business.
Our backlog reflects agreements of sale with our home buyers for homes that have not yet been delivered. We have received a deposit from our home buyer for each home reflected in our backlog, and generally we have the right to retain the deposit if the home buyer does not complete the purchase. In some cases, however, a home buyer may cancel the agreement of sale and receive a complete or partial refund of the deposit for reasons such as state and local law, the home buyer’s inability to obtain mortgage financing, his or her inability to sell his or her current home or our inability to complete and deliver the home within the specified time. If the current industry recovery does not continue or a further decline in economic conditions occurs, or if mortgage financing becomes less available, more home buyers may cancel their agreements of sale with us, which would have an adverse effect on our business and results of operations.
The home building industry is highly competitive and if others are more successful or offer better value to our customers, our business could decline.
We operate in a very competitive environment, which is characterized by competition from a number of other home builders in each market in which we operate. We compete with large national and regional home building companies and with smaller local home builders for land, financing, raw materials and skilled management and labor resources. We also compete with the resale, also referred to as the “previously owned or existing,” home market, which has increased significantly due to the large number of homes that are vacant, and homes that have been foreclosed on or will be foreclosed on, due to the current economic downturn. An oversupply of homes available for sale and the heavy discounting of home prices by some of our competitors could again adversely affect demand for our homes and the results of our operations. Increased competition could require us to further increase our selling incentives and/or reduce our prices. If we are unable to compete effectively in our markets, our business could decline disproportionately to that of our competitors.
If we are not able to obtain suitable financing, our interest rates are increased or our credit ratings are lowered, our business and results of operations may decline.
Our business and results of operations depend substantially on our ability to obtain financing for the development of our residential communities, whether from bank borrowings or from financing in the public debt markets. Our revolving credit facility matures in October 2014 and $2.09 billion of our senior notes become due and payable at various times from November 2012 through September 2032. We cannot be certain that we will be able to continue to replace existing financing or find additional sources of financing in the future.
If we are not able to obtain suitable financing at reasonable terms or replace existing debt and credit facilities when they become due or expire, our costs for borrowings will likely increase and our revenues may decrease, or we could be precluded from continuing our operations at current levels.
Increases in interest rates can make it more difficult and/or expensive for us to obtain the funds we need to operate our business. The amount of interest we incur on our revolving bank credit facility fluctuates based on changes in short-term interest rates, the amount of borrowings we incur and the ratings that national rating agencies assign to our outstanding debt securities. Increases in interest rates generally and/or any downgrading in the ratings that national rating agencies assign to our outstanding debt securities could increase the interest rates we must pay on any subsequent issuances of debt securities, and any such ratings downgrade could also make it more difficult for us to sell such debt securities.
If we cannot obtain letters of credit and surety bonds, our ability to operate may be restricted.
We use letters of credit and surety bonds to secure our performance under various construction and land development agreements, escrow agreements, financial guarantees and other arrangements. Should banks decline to issue letters of credit or surety companies decline to issue surety bonds, our ability to operate could be significantly restricted and could have an adverse effect on our business and results of operations.
If our home buyers or our home buyers’ buyers are not able to obtain suitable financing, our results of operations may decline.
Our results of operations also depend on the ability of our potential home buyers to obtain mortgages for the purchase of our homes. The uncertainties in the mortgage markets and their impact on the overall mortgage market, including the tightening of credit standards, could adversely affect the ability of our customers to obtain financing for a home purchase, thus preventing our potential home buyers from purchasing our homes. Moreover, future increases in the cost of home mortgage financing could prevent our potential home buyers from purchasing our homes. In addition, where our potential home buyers must sell their existing homes in order to buy a home from us, increases in mortgage costs and/or lack of availability of mortgages could

13



prevent the buyers of our potential home buyers’ existing homes from obtaining the mortgages they need to complete their purchases, which would result in our potential home buyers’ inability to buy a home from us. Similar risks apply to those buyers whose contracts are in our backlog of homes to be delivered. If our home buyers, potential buyers or buyers of our home buyers’ current homes cannot obtain suitable financing, our sales and results of operations would be adversely affected.
If our ability to resell mortgages to investors is impaired, our home buyers will be required to find alternative financing.
Generally, when our mortgage subsidiary closes a mortgage for a home buyer at a previously locked-in rate, it already has an agreement in place with an investor to acquire the mortgage following the closing. Due to the deterioration of the credit and financial markets, the number of investors that are willing to purchase our mortgages has decreased and the underwriting standards of the remaining investors have become more stringent. Should the resale market for our mortgages decline or the underwriting standards of our investors become more stringent, our ability to sell future mortgages could be adversely affected and we would either have to commit our own funds to long term investments in mortgage loans, which could, among other things, delay the time when we recognize revenues from home sales on our statements of operations or our home buyers would be required to find an alternative source of financing. If our home buyers cannot obtain another source of financing in order to purchase our homes, our sales and results of operations could be adversely affected.
If land is not available at reasonable prices, our sales and results of operations could decrease.
In the long term, our operations depend on our ability to obtain land at reasonable prices for the development of our residential communities . Due to the recent downturn in our business, our supply of available home sites, both owned and optioned, decreased from a peak of approximately 91,200 home sites controlled at April 30, 2006 to approximately 40,350 at October 31, 2012. In the future, changes in the general availability of land, competition for available land, availability of financing to acquire land, zoning regulations that limit housing density and other market conditions may hurt our ability to obtain land for new residential communities at prices that will allow us to make a reasonable profit. If the supply of land appropriate for development of our residential communities becomes more limited because of these factors, or for any other reason, the cost of land could increase and/or the number of homes that we are able to sell and build could be reduced.
If the market value of our land and homes drops, our results of operations will likely decrease.
The market value of our land and housing inventories depends on market conditions. We acquire land for expansion into new markets and for replacement of land inventory and expansion within our current markets. If housing demand decreases below what we anticipated when we acquired our inventory, we may not be able to make profits similar to what we have made in the past, may experience less than anticipated profits and/or may not be able to recover our costs when we sell and build homes. Due to the significant decline in our business since September 2005, we have recognized significant write-downs of our inventory. If market conditions worsen, we may have to write down our inventories further and/or may have to sell land or homes at a loss.
We participate in certain joint ventures where we may be adversely impacted by the failure of the joint venture or its participants to fulfill their obligations.
We have investments in and commitments to certain joint ventures with unrelated parties. These joint ventures may borrow money to help finance their activities. In certain circumstances, the joint venture participants, including ourselves, are required to provide guarantees of certain obligations relating to the joint ventures. As a result of the recent downturn in the home building industry, some of these joint ventures or their participants have or may become unable or unwilling to fulfill their respective obligations. In addition, in many of these joint ventures, we do not have a controlling interest and as a result, we are not able to require these joint ventures or their participants to honor their obligations or renegotiate them on acceptable terms. If the joint ventures or their participants do not honor their obligations, we may be required to expend additional resources or suffer losses, which could be significant.
Government regulations and legal challenges may delay the start or completion of our communities, increase our expenses or limit our home building activities, which could have a negative impact on our operations.
The approval of numerous governmental authorities must be obtained in connection with our development activities, and these governmental authorities often have broad discretion in exercising their approval authority. We incur substantial costs related to compliance with legal and regulatory requirements. Any increase in legal and regulatory requirements may cause us to incur substantial additional costs, or in some cases cause us to determine that the property is not feasible for development.
Various local, state and federal statutes, ordinances, rules and regulations concerning building, zoning, sales and similar matters apply to and/or affect the housing industry. Governmental regulation affects construction activities as well as sales activities,

14



mortgage lending activities and other dealings with home buyers. The industry also has experienced an increase in state and local legislation and regulations that limit the availability or use of land. Municipalities may also restrict or place moratoriums on the availability of utilities, such as water and sewer taps. In some areas, municipalities may enact growth control initiatives, which will restrict the number of building permits available in a given year. In addition, we may be required to apply for additional approvals or modify our existing approvals because of changes in local circumstances or applicable law. If municipalities in which we operate take actions like these, it could have an adverse effect on our business by causing delays, increasing our costs or limiting our ability to operate in those municipalities. Further, we may experience delays and increased expenses as a result of legal challenges to our proposed communities, whether brought by governmental authorities or private parties.
Our mortgage subsidiary is subject to various state and federal statutes, rules and regulations, including those that relate to licensing, lending operations and other areas of mortgage origination and financing. The impact of those statutes, rules and regulations can increase our home buyers’ cost of financing, increase our cost of doing business, as well as restrict our home buyers’ access to some types of loans.
Increases in taxes or government fees could increase our costs, and adverse changes in tax laws could reduce demand for our homes.
Increases in real estate taxes and other local government fees, such as fees imposed on developers to fund schools, open space, road improvements, and/or provide low and moderate income housing, could increase our costs and have an adverse effect on our operations. In addition, increases in local real estate taxes could adversely affect our potential home buyers who may consider those costs in determining whether to make a new home purchase and decide, as a result, not to purchase one of our homes. In addition, any changes in the income tax laws that would reduce or eliminate tax deductions or incentives to homeowners, such as a change limiting the deductibility of real estate taxes or interest on home mortgages, could make housing less affordable or otherwise reduce the demand for housing, which in turn could reduce our sales and hurt our results of operations.
Adverse weather conditions, natural disasters and other conditions could disrupt the development of our communities, which could harm our sales and results of operations.
Adverse weather conditions and natural disasters, such as hurricanes, tornadoes, earthquakes, floods and fires, can have serious effects on our ability to develop our residential communities. We also may be affected by unforeseen engineering, environmental or geological conditions or problems. Any of these adverse events or circumstances could cause delays in the completion of, or increase the cost of, developing one or more of our residential communities and, as a result, could harm our sales and results of operations.
If we experience shortages or increased costs of labor and supplies or other circumstances beyond our control, there could be delays or increased costs in developing our communities, which could adversely affect our operating results.
Our ability to develop residential communities may be adversely affected by circumstances beyond our control, including: work stoppages, labor disputes and shortages of qualified trades people, such as carpenters, roofers, electricians and plumbers; changes in laws relating to union organizing activity; lack of availability of adequate utility infrastructure and services; our need to rely on local subcontractors who may not be adequately capitalized or insured; and shortages, delays in availability, or fluctuations in prices of building materials. Any of these circumstances could give rise to delays in the start or completion of, or could increase the cost of, developing one or more of our residential communities. We may not be able to recover these increased costs by raising our home prices because the price for each home is typically set months prior to its delivery pursuant to the agreement of sale with the home buyer. If that happens, our operating results could be harmed.
We are subject to one collective bargaining agreement that covers approximately 2% of our employees. We have not experienced any work stoppages due to strikes by unionized workers, but we cannot assure you that there will not be any work stoppages due to strikes or other job actions in the future. We use independent contractors to construct our homes. At any given point in time, those subcontractors, who are not yet represented by a union, may be unionized.
Product liability claims and litigation and warranty claims that arise in the ordinary course of business may be costly, which could adversely affect our business.
As a home builder, we are subject to construction defect and home warranty claims arising in the ordinary course of business. These claims are common in the home building industry and can be costly. In addition, the costs of insuring against construction defect and product liability claims are high, and the amount of coverage offered by insurance companies is currently limited. There can be no assurance that this coverage will not be further restricted and become more costly. If the

15



limits or coverages of our current and former insurance programs prove inadequate, or we are not able to obtain adequate, or reasonably priced, insurance against these types of claims in the future, or the amounts currently provided for future warranty or insurance claims are inadequate, we may experience losses that could negatively impact our financial results.
Our cash flows and results of operations could be adversely affected if legal claims are brought against us and are not resolved in our favor.
Claims have been brought against us in various legal proceedings that have not had, and are not expected to have, a material adverse effect on our business or financial condition. Should such claims be resolved in an unfavorable manner or should additional claims be filed in the future, it is possible that our cash flows and results of operations could be adversely affected.
We could be adversely impacted by the loss of key management personnel.
Our future success depends, to a significant degree, on the efforts of our senior management. Our operations could be adversely affected if key members of senior management leave our employ. As a result of a decline in our stock price, previous retention mechanisms, such as equity awards, have diminished in value and, therefore, may become less effective as incentives for our senior management to continue to remain employed with us.
Changes in tax laws or the interpretation of tax laws may negatively affect our operating results.
We believe that our recorded tax balances are adequate. However, it is not possible to predict the effects of possible changes in the tax laws or changes in their interpretation and whether they could have a material adverse impact on our operating results. We have filed claims for refunds of taxes paid in prior years based upon certain filing positions we believe are appropriate. If the Internal Revenue Service disagrees with these filing positions, we may have to return some of the refunds we have received.
We may not be able to realize all of our deferred tax assets.
At October 31, 2012, we had $415.1 million of deferred tax assets against which we have recognized valuation allowances of $57.0 million. Losses for federal income tax purposes can generally be carried forward for a period of 20 years. We also file tax returns in the various states in which we do business. Each state has its own statutes regarding the use of tax loss carryforwards. Some of the states in which we do business do not allow for the carry forward of losses while others allow for carry forwards for 5 years to 20 years. In order to realize our net deferred tax assets, we must generate sufficient taxable income within the periods allowed by statute to carryfoward losses.
In addition, our ability to utilize net operating losses (“NOLs”), built-in losses, and tax credit carryforwards to offset our future taxable income and/or to recover previously paid taxes would be limited if we were to undergo an “ownership change,” as determined under Internal Revenue Code Section 382 (“Section 382”). A Section 382 ownership change occurs if a stockholder or a group of stockholders who are deemed to own at least 5% of our common stock increase their ownership by more than 50 percentage points over their lowest ownership percentage within a rolling three-year period. If an ownership change occurs, Section 382 would impose an annual limit on the amount of NOLs we can use to reduce our taxable income equal to the product of the total value of our outstanding equity immediately prior to the ownership change (reduced by certain items specified in Section 382) and the federal long-term tax-exempt interest rate in effect for the month of the ownership change. A number of special rules apply to calculating this annual limit.
While the complexity of Section 382’s provisions and the limited knowledge any public company has about the ownership of its publicly traded stock make it difficult to determine whether an ownership change has occurred, we currently believe that an ownership change has not occurred. However, if an ownership change were to occur, the annual limitation under Section 382 could result in a material amount of our NOLs expiring unused. This would significantly impair the value of our NOL asset and, as a result, have a negative impact on our financial position and results of operations.
During 2010, our stockholders approved an amendment to our second restated certificate of incorporation that is designed to deter transfers of our common stock that could result in an ownership change. However, these measures cannot guarantee complete protection against an ownership change and it remains possible that one may occur.
Our business is seasonal in nature, so our quarterly operating results may fluctuate.
Our quarterly operating results fluctuate with the seasons; normally, a significant portion of our agreements of sale are entered into with customers in the winter and spring months. Construction of a customer’s home typically proceeds after signing the agreement of sale and can require 12 months or more to complete. Weather-related problems may occur in the late winter and early spring, delaying starts or closings or increasing costs and reducing profitability. In addition, delays in opening new

16



communities or new sections of existing communities could have an adverse impact on home sales and revenues. Expenses are not incurred and recognized evenly throughout the year. Because of these factors, our quarterly operating results may be uneven and may be marked by lower revenues and earnings in some quarters than in others.
We invest in distressed loans and real estate related assets at significant discounts; however, if the real estate markets deteriorate significantly, we could suffer losses.
We formed Gibraltar Capital and Asset Management to invest in distressed real estate opportunities. Our investments have involved acquisitions of portfolios or interests in portfolios of distressed loans, some of which have been converted to real estate owned. However, these investments present many risks in addition to those inherent in normal lending activities, including the risk that the recovery of the United States real estate markets will not take place for many years and that the value of our investments are not recoverable. There is also the possibility that, if we cannot liquidate our investments as expected, we would be required to reduce the value at which they are carried on our financial statements.
Decreases in the market value of our investments in marketable securities could have an adverse impact on our results of operations.
We have a significant amount of funds invested in marketable securities during the year, the market value of which is subject to changes from period to period. Decreases in the market value of our marketable securities could have an adverse impact on our results of operations.
Future terrorist attacks against the United States or increased domestic or international instability could have an adverse effect on our operations.

Adverse developments in the war on terrorism, future terrorist attacks against the United States or any foreign country, or increased domestic or international instability could significantly reduce the number of new contracts signed, increase the number of cancellations of existing contracts and/or increase our operating expenses which could adversely affect our business.
ITEM 1B. UNRESOLVED STAFF COMMENTS
Not applicable.
ITEM 2. PROPERTIES
Headquarters
Our corporate office, which we lease from an unrelated third party, contains approximately 200,000 square feet and is located in Horsham, Pennsylvania.
Manufacturing/Distribution Facilities
We own a manufacturing facility of approximately 300,000 square feet located in Morrisville, Pennsylvania, a manufacturing facility of approximately 186,000 square feet located in Emporia, Virginia, and a manufacturing facility of approximately 134,000 square feet in Knox, Indiana. We lease, from an unrelated third party, a facility of approximately 56,000 square feet located in Fairless Hills, Pennsylvania. At these facilities, we manufacture open wall panels, roof and floor trusses, and certain interior and exterior millwork to supply a portion of our construction needs. These facilities supply components used in our North, Mid-Atlantic and South geographic segments. These operations also permit us to purchase wholesale lumber, plywood, windows, doors, certain other interior and exterior millwork and other building materials to supply to our communities. We believe that increased efficiencies, cost savings and productivity result from the operation of these plants and from the wholesale purchase of materials.
Office and Other Facilities
We own or lease from unrelated third parties office and warehouse space and golf course facilities in various locations, none of which are material to our business.
ITEM 3. LEGAL PROCEEDINGS
We are involved in various claims and litigation arising principally in the ordinary course of business.
In January 2006, we received a request for information pursuant to Section 308 of the Clean Water Act from Region 3 of the U.S. Environmental Protection Agency (“EPA”) concerning storm water discharge practices in connection with our home

17



building projects in the states that comprise EPA Region 3. Thereafter, the U.S. Department of Justice assumed responsibility for the oversight of this matter and alleged that we violated regulatory requirements applicable to storm water discharges. The parties have entered into a consent decree, which has been submitted for approval to the presiding judge in the U.S. District Court for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. We believe the disposition of this matter will not have a material adverse effect on our results of operations and liquidity or on our financial condition.
On November 4, 2008, a shareholder derivative action was filed in the Chancery Court of Delaware by Milton Pfeiffer against Robert I. Toll, Zvi Barzilay, Joel H. Rassman, Bruce E. Toll, Paul E. Shapiro, Robert S. Blank, Carl B. Marbach, and Richard J. Braemer. The plaintiff purports to bring his claims on behalf of Toll Brothers, Inc. and alleges that the director and officer defendants breached their fiduciary duties to us and our stockholders with respect to their sales of shares of our common stock during the period from December 9, 2004 to November 8, 2005. The plaintiff alleges that such stock sales were made while in possession of non-public, material information about us. The plaintiff seeks contribution and indemnification from the individual director and officer defendants for costs and expenses incurred by us in connection with defending a now-settled related class action. In addition, again purportedly on our behalf, the plaintiff seeks disgorgement of the defendants' profits from their stock sales.
On March 4, 2009, a second shareholder derivative action was brought by Oliverio Martinez in the U.S. District Court for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. The case was brought against the eleven then-current members of our board of directors and the Company's Chief Accounting Officer. This plaintiff alleges breaches of fiduciary duty, waste of corporate assets, and unjust enrichment during the period from February 2005 to November 2006. The plaintiff further alleges that certain of the defendants sold our stock during this period while in possession of allegedly non-public, material information and plaintiff seeks disgorgement of profits from these sales. The plaintiff also asserts a claim for equitable indemnity for costs and expenses incurred by us in connection with defending a now-settled related class action lawsuit.
On April 1, 2009, a third shareholder derivative action was filed by William Hall, also in the U.S. District Court for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania, against the eleven then-current members of our board of directors and the Company's Chief Accounting Officer. This complaint is identical to the previous shareholder complaint filed in Philadelphia and, on July 14, 2009, the two cases were consolidated. On April 30, 2010, the plaintiffs filed an amended consolidated complaint.
An agreement has been reached by the parties to settle all three shareholder derivative actions, and this agreement has been filed in the Chancery Court of Delaware. The agreement is conditioned on, among other things, final approval by the Chancery Court of Delaware following notice to our shareholders. The agreement provides that, following approval of the settlement and entry of judgment by the Chancery Court of Delaware, the plaintiffs in the two actions pending in the U.S. District Court for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania will seek dismissal of those actions.
ITEM 4. MINE SAFETY DISCLOSURES
Not Applicable
PART II
ITEM 5. MARKET FOR REGISTRANT’S COMMON EQUITY, RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS AND ISSUER PURCHASES OF EQUITY SECURITIES
Our common stock is traded on the New York Stock Exchange (Symbol: TOL).
The following table sets forth the price range of our common stock on the New York Stock Exchange for each fiscal quarter during the two years ended October 31, 2012.
 
Three months ended
 
October 31
 
July 31
 
April 30
 
January 31
2012
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
       High
$
37.07

 
$
31.33

 
$
25.79

 
$
23.67

       Low
$
28.39

 
$
23.83

 
$
21.78

 
$
16.78

2011
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
  High
$
20.31

 
$
21.93

 
$
22.42

 
$
21.33

Low
$
13.16

 
$
19.53

 
$
19.08

 
$
17.36

The closing price of our common stock on the New York Stock Exchange on the last trading day of our fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 was $33.01, $17.44 and $17.94, respectively. At December 16, 2012, there were

18



approximately 776 record holders of our common stock.
For information regarding securities authorized for issuance under equity compensation plans, see “Equity Compensation Plan Information” in Item 12 of this Form 10-K.
We have not paid any cash dividends on our common stock to date and expect that, for the foreseeable future, we will not do so. Rather, we expect to follow a policy of retaining earnings in order to finance our business and, from time to time, repurchase shares of our common stock. The payment of dividends is within the discretion of our Board of Directors and any decision to pay dividends in the future will depend upon an evaluation of a number of factors, including our results of operations, capital requirements, our operating and financial condition, and any contractual limitation then in effect. Our bank credit agreement requires us to maintain a minimum tangible net worth (as defined in the agreement), which restricts the amount of dividends we may pay. At October 31, 2012, under the most restrictive provisions of our bank credit agreement, we could have paid up to approximately $908.3 million of cash dividends.
Indemnification of Directors and Officers
Our Certificate of Incorporation and Bylaws provide for indemnification of our directors and officers. We have also entered into individual indemnification agreements with each of our directors.
Issuer Purchases of Equity Securities
During the three months ended October 31, 2012, we repurchased the following shares under our repurchase program:
Period
 
Total
number of
shares purchased (a)
 
Average
price
paid per share
 
Total number
of shares
purchased as
part of a
publicly
announced plan or program (b)
 
Maximum
number
of shares that
may yet be
purchased
under the plan or program (b)
 
 
(in thousands)
 
 
 
(in thousands)
 
(in thousands)
August 1 to August 31, 2012
 
3

 
$
32.07

 
1

 
8,769

September 1 to September 30, 2012
 
2

 
$
36.04

 
2

 
8,767

October 1 to October 31, 2012
 
1

 
$
33.82

 
1

 
8,766

Total
 
6

 
$
33.66

 
4

 


(a)
Our stock incentive plans permit participants to exercise non-qualified stock options using a “net exercise” method. In a net exercise, we generally withhold from the total number of shares that otherwise would be issued to the participant upon exercise of the stock option that number of shares having a fair market value at the time of exercise equal to the option exercise price and applicable income tax withholdings, and remit the remaining shares to the participant. In addition, our stock incentive plans also permit participants to use the fair market value of Company common stock they own to pay for the exercise of stock options (“stock swap method”). During the three months ended October 31, 2012, the net exercise method was employed to exercise options to acquire 34,000 shares of our common stock; we withheld 10,083 of the shares subject to the options to cover $0.4 million of aggregate option exercise price and income tax withholdings and issued the remaining 23,917 shares to the participants. The 10,083 shares withheld under the net exercise method are not included in the total number of shares purchased in the table above. In addition, our stock incentive plans also permit participants to use the fair market value of Company common stock they own to pay for the exercise of stock options (“stock swap method”). During the three months ended October 31, 2012, the Company received 1,775 shares with an average fair market value per share of $32.59 for the exercise of 5,498 options using the stock swap method. The shares used under the stock swap method are included in the total number of shares purchased in the table above.
(b)
On March 20, 2003, our Board of Directors authorized the repurchase of up to 20 million shares of our common stock in open market transactions or otherwise, for the purpose of providing shares for our various employee benefit plans. The Board of Directors did not fix an expiration date for the repurchase program.
Except as set forth above, we did not repurchase any of our equity securities during the three-month period ended October 31, 2012.

19



Stockholder Return Performance Graph
The following graph and chart compares the five-year cumulative total return (assuming an investment of $100 was made on October 31, 2007 and that dividends, if any, were reinvested) from October 31, 2007 to October 31, 2012, for (a) our common stock, (b) the Standard & Poor’s homebuilding Index (the “S&P homebuilding Index”) and (c) the Standard & Poor’s 500 Composite Stock Index (the “S&P 500 Index”):
October 31:
 
2007
 
2008
 
2009
 
2010
 
2011
 
2012
Toll Brothers, Inc.
 
100.00

 
100.92

 
75.60

 
78.31

 
76.12

 
144.09

S&P 500
 
100.00

 
63.90

 
70.17

 
81.76

 
88.37

 
101.81

S&P homebuilding
 
100.00

 
56.37

 
61.40

 
59.76

 
57.35

 
136.06


ITEM 6. SELECTED FINANCIAL DATA
The following tables set forth selected consolidated financial and housing data at and for each of the five fiscal years in the period ended October 31, 2012. It should be read in conjunction with the Consolidated Financial Statements and Notes thereto, listed in Item 15(a)1 of this Form 10-K beginning at page F-1 and Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations included in Item 7 of this Form 10-K.

20



Summary Consolidated Statements of Operations and Balance Sheets (amounts in thousands, except per share data):
Year ended October 31:
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2009
 
2008
Revenues
 
$
1,882,781

 
$
1,475,881

 
$
1,494,771

 
$
1,755,310

 
$
3,148,166

Income (loss) before income taxes
 
$
112,942

 
$
(29,366
)
 
$
(117,187
)
 
$
(496,465
)
 
$
(466,787
)
Net income (loss)
 
$
487,146

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
 
$
(755,825
)
 
$
(297,810
)
Earnings (loss) per share:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
 
$
2.91

 
$
0.24

 
$
(0.02
)
 
$
(4.68
)
 
$
(1.88
)
Diluted
 
$
2.86

 
$
0.24

 
$
(0.02
)
 
$
(4.68
)
 
$
(1.88
)
Weighted average number of shares outstanding:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
 
167,346

 
167,140

 
165,666

 
161,549

 
158,730

Diluted
 
170,154

 
168,381

 
165,666

 
161,549

 
158,730

At October 31:
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2009
 
2008
Cash, cash equivalents and marketable securities
 
$
1,217,892

 
$
1,139,912

 
$
1,236,927

 
$
1,908,894

 
$
1,633,495

Inventory
 
$
3,761,187

 
$
3,416,723

 
$
3,241,725

 
$
3,183,566

 
$
4,127,475

Total assets
 
$
6,181,044

 
$
5,055,246

 
$
5,171,555

 
$
5,634,444

 
$
6,586,836

Debt:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Loans payable
 
$
99,817

 
$
106,556

 
$
94,491

 
$
472,854

 
$
613,594

Senior debt
 
2,080,463

 
1,490,972

 
1,544,110

 
1,587,648

 
1,143,445

Senior subordinated debt
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
47,872

 
343,000

Mortgage company loan facility
 
72,664

 
57,409

 
72,367

 
27,015

 
37,867

Total debt
 
$
2,252,944

 
$
1,654,937

 
$
1,710,968

 
$
2,135,389

 
$
2,137,906

Equity
 
$
3,127,871

 
$
2,592,551

 
$
2,559,013

 
$
2,516,482

 
$
3,237,653

Housing Data
Year ended October 31:
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2009
 
2008
Closings (1):
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Number of homes
 
3,286

 
2,611

 
2,642

 
2,965

 
4,743

Value (in thousands)
 
$
1,882,781

 
$
1,475,881

 
$
1,494,771

 
$
1,755,310

 
$
3,106,293

Revenues — percentage of completion (in thousands)
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 

 
$
41,873

Net contracts signed:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Number of homes
 
4,159

 
2,784

 
2,605

 
2,450

 
2,927

Value (in thousands)
 
$
2,557,917

 
$
1,604,827

 
$
1,472,030

 
$
1,304,656

 
$
1,608,191

At October 31:
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2009
 
2008
Backlog:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Number of homes
 
2,569

 
1,667

 
1,494

 
1,531

 
2,046

Value (in thousands)
 
$
1,669,857

 
$
981,052

 
$
852,106

 
$
874,837

 
$
1,325,491

Number of selling communities
 
224

 
215

 
195

 
200

 
273

Home sites:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Owned
 
31,327

 
30,199

 
28,891

 
26,872

 
32,081

Controlled
 
9,023

 
7,298

 
5,961

 
5,045

 
7,703

Total
 
40,350

 
37,497

 
34,852

 
31,917

 
39,784

(1)
Excludes 88 units delivered in fiscal 2008 which were accounted for using the percentage of completion accounting method with an aggregate delivered value of $86.1 million.


21



ITEM 7. MANAGEMENT’S DISCUSSION AND ANALYSIS OF FINANCIAL CONDITION AND RESULTS OF OPERATIONS
This discussion and analysis is based on, should be read with, and is qualified in its entirety by, the Consolidated Financial Statements and Notes thereto included in Item 8 of this Form 10-K, beginning at page F-1.  It also should be read in conjunction with the disclosure under "Forward-Looking Statement" in Part 1 of this Form 10-K.
Unless otherwise stated in this report, net contracts signed represents a number or value equal to the gross number or value of contracts signed during the relevant period, less the number or value of contracts canceled during the relevant period, which includes contracts that were signed during the relevant period and in prior periods.
OVERVIEW
Our Business
We design, build, market and arrange financing for detached and attached homes in luxury residential communities. We are also involved, directly and through joint ventures, in projects where we are building or converting existing rental apartment buildings into, high-, mid- and low-rise luxury homes. We are also developing, through joint ventures, a high-rise luxury condominium/hotel project and a for-rent luxury apartment complex. We cater to move-up, empty-nester, active-adult, age-qualified and second-home buyers in the United States. At October 31, 2012, we were operating in 19 states. In the five years ended October 31, 2012, we delivered 16,247 homes from 530 communities, including 3,286 homes from 280 communities in fiscal 2012. In addition, we invest in distressed real estate opportunities through our subsidiary, Gibraltar Capital and Asset Management LLC (“Gibraltar”).
Fiscal 2012 Financial Highlights
In the twelve-month period ended October 31, 2012, we recognized $1.88 billion of revenues and net income of $487.1 million, as compared to $1.48 billion of revenues and net income of $39.8 million in fiscal 2011. The fiscal 2012 net income included an income tax benefit of $394.7 million related to the reversal of deferred tax asset valuation allowances and $14.7 million of inventory impairment charges and write-offs. Fiscal 2011 income included $51.8 million of inventory impairments and write-offs, $40.9 million of impairment charges related to our investments in unconsolidated entities, $3.8 million of expenses related to repurchases of our debt, and an income tax benefit of $69.2 million.
At October 31, 2012, we had $1.22 billion of cash, cash equivalents and marketable securities on hand and approximately $814.9 million available under our $885.0 million revolving credit facility that matures in October 2014. During fiscal 2012, we issued $587.5 million of senior notes and exchanged $119.9 million of senior notes maturing in 2022 for $117.6 million of senior notes maturing in fiscal 2013.
Our Challenging Business Environment and Current Outlook
We believe that, in fiscal 2012, the housing market began to recover from the significant slowdown that started in the fourth quarter of our fiscal year ended October 31, 2005. During fiscal 2012, we, and many of the other public home builders, have seen a strong recovery in the number of new sales contracts signed. Our net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, increased nearly 50% in the number of net contracts signed and 59% in the value of net contracts signed. Although the number and value of our net contracts signed increased in fiscal 2012 over fiscal 2011, they were still significantly below what we recorded in fiscal 2005.
We believe that, as the unemployment rate has declined and confidence has improved, pent-up demand has begun to be released. Additionally, rising home prices, reduced inventory, and low mortgage rates have resulted in increased demand, although still below historical levels. We believe that the key to a full recovery in our business depends on these factors as well as a sustained stabilization of financial markets and the economy in general.
We are still impacted by the slowdown, which we believe started with a decline in consumer confidence, an overall softening of demand for new homes and an oversupply of homes available for sale. The slowdown was exacerbated by, among other things, a decline in the overall economy, increased unemployment, the large number of homes that were vacant, homes that had been foreclosed on due to the economic downturn, a fear of job loss, a decline in home prices and the resulting reduction in home equity, the inability of some of our home buyers, or some prospective buyers of their homes, to sell their current homes, the deterioration in the credit markets, and the direct and indirect impact of the turmoil in the mortgage loan market.

22



We believe that the demographics of the move-up, empty-nester, active-adult, age-qualified and second-home upscale markets will provide us with the potential for growth in the coming decade. According to the U.S. Census Bureau, the number of households earning $100,000 or more (in constant 2011 dollars) at September 2012 stood at 25.4 million, or approximately 17.3% of all U.S. households. This group has grown at three times the rate of increase of all U.S. households since 1980. According to Harvard University's June 2012 "The State of the Nations Housing", the growth and aging of the current population, assuming the economic recovery is sustained over the next few years, supports the addition of about one million new household formations per year during the next decade.
According to the U.S. Census Bureau, during the period 1970 through 2007, total housing starts in the United States averaged approximately 1.26 million per year, while in the period 2008 through 2011, total housing starts averaged approximately 0.66 million per year. In addition, based on the trend of household formations in relation to population growth during the period 2000 through 2007, the number of households formed in the four-year period of 2008 through 2011 was approximately 2.3 million fewer than would have been expected.
We believe many of our target customers generally have remained employed during this downturn; however, we believe many deferred their home buying decisions because of concerns over the direction of the economy, the direction of home prices, and their ability to sell their existing home. Additionally, rising home prices, reduced inventory, and low mortgage rates have resulted in increased demand, although still below historical levels. We believe that a full recovery in our business depends on these factors as well as a sustained stabilization of financial markets and the economy in general.
In many markets, the pipeline of approved and improved home sites has dwindled as builders and developers have lacked both the capital and the economic benefit for bringing sites through approvals. Therefore, we believe that as demand continues to strengthen, builders and developers with approved land in well-located markets will be poised to benefit. We believe that this will be particularly true for us because our land portfolio is heavily weighted in the metro-Washington, DC to metro-Boston corridor where land is scarce, approvals are more difficult to obtain and overbuilding has been relatively less prevalent than in the Southeast and Western regions.
We continue to believe that many of our communities are in desirable locations that are difficult to replace and in markets where approvals have been increasingly difficult to achieve. We believe that many of these communities have substantial embedded value that may be realized in the future as the housing recovery strengthens.
Competitive Landscape
Based on our experience during prior downturns in the housing industry, we believe that attractive land acquisition opportunities arise in difficult times for those builders that have the financial strength to take advantage of them. In the current environment, we believe our strong balance sheet, liquidity, access to capital, broad geographic presence, diversified product line, experienced personnel and national brand name all position us well for such opportunities now and in the future.
We continue to see reduced competition from the small and mid-sized private builders that had been our primary competitors in the luxury market. We believe that many of these builders are no longer in business and that access to capital by the remaining private builders is already severely constrained. We envision that there are fewer and more selective lenders serving our industry as the market rebounds and that those lenders likely will gravitate to the home building companies that offer them the greatest security, the strongest balance sheets and the broadest array of potential business opportunities. While some builders may re-emerge with new capital, the scarcity of attractive land is a further impediment to their re-emergence. We believe that reduced competition, combined with attractive long-term demographics, will reward those well-capitalized builders that can persevere through the current challenging environment.
We believe that geographic and product diversification, access to lower-cost capital and strong demographics benefit those builders, like us, who can control land and persevere through the increasingly difficult regulatory approval process. We believe that these factors favor a large publicly traded home building company with the capital and expertise to control home sites and gain market share. We also believe that over the past five years, many builders and land developers reduced the number of home sites that were taken through the approval process. The process continues to be difficult and lengthy, and the political pressure from no-growth proponents continues to increase, but we believe our expertise in taking land through the approval process and our already-approved land positions will allow us to grow in the years to come as market conditions improve.
Land Acquisition and Development
Because of the length of time that it takes to obtain the necessary approvals on a property, complete the land improvements on it and deliver a home after a home buyer signs an agreement of sale, we are subject to many risks. In certain cases, we attempt to reduce some of these risks by utilizing one or more of the following methods: controlling land for future development

23



through options (also referred to herein as “land purchase contracts” or “option and purchase agreements”), thus allowing the necessary governmental approvals to be obtained before acquiring title to the land; generally commencing construction of a detached home only after executing an agreement of sale and receiving a substantial down payment from the buyer; and using subcontractors to perform home construction and land development work on a fixed-price basis.
In response to the decline in market conditions over the past several years, we re-evaluated and renegotiated or canceled many of our land purchase contracts. In addition, we sold, and may continue to sell, certain parcels of land that we identified as non-strategic. As a result, we reduced our land position from a high of approximately 91,200 home sites at April 30, 2006 to a low of approximately 31,700 home sites at January 31, 2010. Based on our belief that the housing market has begun to recover, the increased attractiveness of land available for purchase and the revival of demand in certain areas, we have begun to increase our land positions. During fiscal 2012 and 2011, we acquired control of approximately 6,100 home sites (net of options terminated) and 5,300 home sites (net of options terminated), respectively. In addition, in November 2012, we entered into an agreement with one of our joint venture partners to acquire approximately 800 lots from the joint venture. Of the 6,100 home sites we acquired control of in fiscal 2012, approximately 1,500 home sites were from the CamWest asset purchase. At October 31, 2012, we controlled approximately 40,350 home sites of which we owned approximately 31,300. Significant improvements were completed on approximately 12,700 of the 31,300 home sites. At October 31, 2012, we were selling from 224 communities, compared to 215 at October 31, 2011 and 195 communities at October 31, 2010. Our November 2011 acquisition of CamWest assets increased our selling community count by 15.
We expect to be selling from 225 to 255 communities at October 31, 2013. At October 31, 2012, we had 50 communities that were temporarily closed due to market conditions.
Availability of Customer Mortgage Financing
We maintain relationships with a widely diversified group of mortgage financial institutions, many of which are among the largest and, we believe, most reliable in the industry. We believe that regional and community banks continue to recognize the long-term value in creating relationships with high-quality, affluent customers such as our home buyers, and these banks continue to provide such customers with financing.
We believe that our home buyers generally are, and should continue to be, better able to secure mortgages due to their typically lower loan-to-value ratios and attractive credit profiles as compared to the average home buyer. Nevertheless, in recent years, tightened credit standards have shrunk the pool of potential home buyers and hindered accessibility of or eliminated certain loan products previously available to our home buyers. Our home buyers continue to face stricter mortgage underwriting guidelines, higher down payment requirements and narrower appraisal guidelines than in the past. In addition, some of our home buyers continue to find it more difficult to sell their existing homes as prospective buyers of their homes may face difficulties obtaining a mortgage. In addition, other potential buyers may have little or negative equity in their existing homes and may not be able or willing to purchase a larger or more expensive home.
While the range of mortgage products available to a potential home buyer is not what it was in the period 2005 through 2007, we have seen improvements over the past two years. Indications from industry participants, including commercial banks, mortgage banks, mortgage real estate investment trusts and mortgage insurance companies are that availability, parameters and pricing of jumbo loans are all improving. We believe that improvement should not only enhance financing alternatives for existing jumbo buyers, but also help to offset the reduction in Fannie Mae/Freddie Mac-eligible loan amounts in some markets. Based on the mortgages provided by our mortgage subsidiary, we do not expect the change in the Fannie Mae/Freddie Mac-eligible loan amounts to have a significant impact on our business.
There has been significant media attention given to mortgage put-backs, a practice by which a buyer of a mortgage loan tries to recoup losses from the loan originator. We do not believe this is a material issue for our mortgage subsidiary. Of the approximately 15,700 loans sold by our mortgage subsidiary since November 1, 2004, only 31 have been the subject of either actual indemnification payments or take-backs or contingent liability loss provisions related thereto. We believe that this is due to (i) our typical home buyer's financial position and sophistication, (ii) on average, our home buyers who use mortgage financing to purchase a home pay approximately 30% of the purchase price in cash, (iii) our general practice of not originating certain loan types such as option adjustable rate mortgages and down payment assistance products, and our origination of few sub-prime and high loan-to-value/no documentation loans, (iv) our elimination of “early payment default” provisions from each of our agreements with our mortgage investors several years ago, and (v) the quality of our controls, processes and personnel in our mortgage subsidiary.
The Dodd-Frank Wall Street Reform and Consumer Protection Act provides for a number of new requirements relating to residential mortgage lending practices, many of which are subject to further potential rulemaking. These include, among others, minimum standards for mortgages and related lender practices, the definitions and parameters of a Qualified Mortgage and a

24



Qualified Residential Mortgage, future risk retention requirements, limitations on certain fees, prohibition of certain tying arrangements and remedies for borrowers in foreclosure proceedings in the event that a lender violates fee limitations or minimum standards. The ultimate effect of such provisions on lending institutions, including our mortgage subsidiary, will depend on the rules that are ultimately promulgated.
Gibraltar
We continue to look for distressed real estate opportunities through Gibraltar. Gibraltar continues to selectively review a steady flow of new opportunities, including bank portfolios and other distressed real estate investments. In fiscal 2012, Gibraltar acquired 12 non-performing loans with an unpaid principal balance of approximately $56.6 million. The loans acquired included non-performing loans primarily secured by commercial land and buildings in various stages of completion. The portfolios that Gibraltar previously acquired were primarily residential acquisition, development, and construction loans secured by properties in various stages of completion.
At October 31, 2012, Gibraltar had direct investments in loan portfolios, real estate owned and participations in a loan portfolio and real estate owned of approximately $95.5 million and an investment in a structured asset joint venture of $37.3 million. At October 31, 2012, Gibraltar, directly and through a loan participation, controlled 109 loans and properties with a net unpaid principal of the loans or estimated fair value of the properties of approximately $195.9 million.
During the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012 and 2011, we recognized income of $7.2 million and $6.9 million from the Gibraltar operations, respectively, including its equity in the earnings from its investment in a structured asset joint venture.
CONTRACTS AND BACKLOG
The aggregate value of gross sales contracts signed increased 56.1% in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, and 8.7% in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The value of gross sales contracts signed was $2.67 billion (4,341 homes) in fiscal 2012, $1.71 billion (2,965 homes) in fiscal 2011 and $1.57 billion (2,789 homes) in fiscal 2010. The increase in the aggregate value of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was the result of a 46.4% increase in the number of gross contracts signed, and a 6.6% increase in the average value of each contract signed. The increase in the number of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to the beginning of the recovery in the U.S. housing market in fiscal 2012, reduced competition from the small and mid-sized private builders that had been our primary competitors in the luxury market, and a 10% increase in the average number of selling communities in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
The increase in the aggregate value of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was the result of a 6.3% increase in the number of gross contracts signed, and a 2.3% increase in the average value of each contract signed. The increase in the number of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to the increase in the number of selling communities in fiscal 2011.
In fiscal 2012, 2011, 2010 and 2009, home buyers canceled $107.3 million (182 homes), $102.8 million (181 homes), $98.3 million (184 homes) and $321.2 million (453 homes) of signed contracts, respectively. As a percentage of the number of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2012, 2011, 2010 and 2009, home buyers canceled 4.2%, 6.1%, 6.6% and 15.6%, in those respective years, and 4.0%, 6.0%, 6.3%, and 19.8% of the value of gross contracts signed in those respective years. Our contract cancellation rates in fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010 were comparable to the cancellation rates prior to fiscal 2006.
The aggregate value of net contracts signed increased 59.4% in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. The value of net contracts signed was $2.56 billion (4,159 homes) in fiscal 2012 and $1.60 billion (2,784 homes) in fiscal 2011. The increase in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was the result of a 49.4% increase in the number of net contracts signed, and a 6.7% increase in the average value of each contract signed. The increase in the number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was the result of the higher number of gross contracts signed in fiscal 2012 and the reduced rate of contract cancellations in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
The aggregate value of net contracts signed increased 9.0% in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The value of net contracts signed was $1.60 billion (2,784 homes) in fiscal 2011, $1.47 billion (2,605 homes) in fiscal 2010 and $1.30 billion (2,450 homes) in fiscal 2009. The increase in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was the result of a 6.9% increase in the number of net contracts signed, and a 2.0% increase in the average value of each contract signed. The increase in the number of contracts signed in fiscal 2011 was primarily due to the increased number of communities that we had open for sale in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.


25



Backlog consists of homes under contract but not yet delivered to our home buyers. The value of our backlog at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 was $1.67 billion (2,569 homes), $981.1 million (1,667 homes) and $852.1 million (1,494 homes), respectively.
The 70.2% and 54.1% increase in the value and number of homes in backlog at October 31, 2012, as compared to October 31, 2011, was due to the increase in the number and the average value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011 and the higher value and number of homes in backlog at October 31, 2011 as compared to October 31, 2010, offset, in part, by the increase in the aggregate value and number of our deliveries in fiscal 2012, as compared to the aggregate value and number of deliveries in fiscal 2011.
The 15.1% and 11.6% increase in the value and number of homes in backlog at October 31, 2011 as compared the October 31, 2010, was due to the increase in the number and average value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010 and the decrease in the aggregate value and number of our deliveries in fiscal 2011, as compared to the aggregate value and number of deliveries in fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by the lower value of our backlog at October 31, 2010, as compared to our backlog at October 31, 2009.
The decrease in backlog at October 31, 2010, as compared to the backlog at October 31, 2009, was primarily attributable to the continued decline in the new home market and the decrease in the value and number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2010, as compared to fiscal 2009, offset, in part, by lower deliveries in fiscal 2010, as compared to fiscal 2009.
For more information regarding revenues, gross contracts signed, contract cancellations and net contracts signed by geographic segment, see “Geographic Segments” in this MD&A.
CRITICAL ACCOUNTING POLICIES
We believe the following critical accounting policies reflect the more significant judgments and estimates used in the preparation of our consolidated financial statements.
Inventory
Inventory is stated at cost unless an impairment exists, in which case it is written down to fair value in accordance with GAAP. In addition to direct land acquisition, land development and home construction costs, costs also include interest, real estate taxes and direct overhead related to development and construction, which are capitalized to inventory during periods beginning with the commencement of development and ending with the completion of construction. For those communities that have been temporarily closed, no additional capitalized interest is allocated to the community’s inventory until it re-opens, and other carrying costs are expensed as incurred. Once a parcel of land has been approved for development and we open the community, it can typically take four or more years to fully develop, sell and deliver all the homes in that community. Longer or shorter time periods are possible depending on the number of home sites in a community and the sales and delivery pace of the homes in a community. Our master planned communities, consisting of several smaller communities, may take up to ten years or more to complete. Because our inventory is considered a long-lived asset under GAAP, we are required to regularly review the carrying value of each of our communities and write down the value of those communities when we believe the values are not recoverable.
Current Communities: When the profitability of a current community deteriorates, the sales pace declines significantly or some other factor indicates a possible impairment in the recoverability of the asset, the asset is reviewed for impairment by comparing the estimated future undiscounted cash flow for the community to its carrying value. If the estimated future undiscounted cash flow is less than the community’s carrying value, the carrying value is written down to its estimated fair value. Estimated fair value is primarily determined by discounting the estimated future cash flow of each community. The impairment is charged to cost of revenues in the period in which the impairment is determined. In estimating the future undiscounted cash flow of a community, we use various estimates such as: (i) the expected sales pace in a community, based upon general economic conditions that will have a short-term or long-term impact on the market in which the community is located and on competition within the market, including the number of home sites available and pricing and incentives being offered in other communities owned by us or by other builders; (ii) the expected sales prices and sales incentives to be offered in a community; (iii) costs expended to date and expected to be incurred in the future, including, but not limited to, land and land development costs, home construction costs, interest costs and overhead costs; (iv) alternative product offerings that may be offered in a community that will have an impact on sales pace, sales price, building cost or the number of homes that can be built in a particular community; and (v) alternative uses for the property, such as the possibility of a sale of the entire community to another builder or the sale of individual home sites.


26



Future Communities: We evaluate all land held for future communities or future sections of current communities, whether owned or optioned, to determine whether or not we expect to proceed with the development of the land as originally contemplated. This evaluation encompasses the same types of estimates used for current communities described above, as well as an evaluation of the regulatory environment in which the land is located and the estimated probability of obtaining the necessary approvals, the estimated time and cost it will take to obtain those approvals and the possible concessions that will be required to be given in order to obtain them. Concessions may include cash payments to fund improvements to public places such as parks and streets, dedication of a portion of the property for use by the public or as open space or a reduction in the density or size of the homes to be built. Based upon this review, we decide (i) as to land under contract to be purchased, whether the contract will likely be terminated or renegotiated, and (ii) as to land we own, whether the land will likely be developed as contemplated or in an alternative manner, or should be sold. We then further determine whether costs that have been capitalized to the community are recoverable or should be written off. The write-off is charged to cost of revenues in the period in which the need for the write-off is determined.
The estimates used in the determination of the estimated cash flows and fair value of both current and future communities are based on factors known to us at the time such estimates are made and our expectations of future operations and economic conditions. Should the estimates or expectations used in determining estimated fair value deteriorate in the future, we may be required to recognize additional impairment charges and write-offs related to current and future communities.
We provided for inventory impairment charges and the expensing of costs that we believed not to be recoverable in each of the three fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 as shown in the table below (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Land controlled for future communities
$
451

 
$
17,752

 
$
6,069

Land owned for future communities
1,218

 
17,000

 
55,700

Operating communities
13,070

 
17,085

 
53,489

 
$
14,739

 
$
51,837

 
$
115,258

The table below provides, for the periods indicated, the number of operating communities that we reviewed for potential impairment, the number of operating communities in which we recognized impairment charges, the amount of impairment charges recognized, and, as of the end of the period indicated, the fair value of those communities, net of impairment charges ($ amounts in thousands).

27



 
 
 
 
Impaired operating communities
Three months ended:
 
Number of
communities tested
 
Number of communities
 
Fair value of
communities,
net of
impairment charges
 
Impairment charges
Fiscal 2012:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
113

 
8

 
$
49,758

 
$
6,425

April 30
 
115

 
2

 
$
22,962

 
2,560

July 31
 
115

 
4

 
$
6,609

 
2,685

October 31
 
108

 
3

 
$
9,319

 
1,400

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
13,070

Fiscal 2011:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
143

 
6

 
$
56,105

 
$
5,475

April 30
 
142

 
9

 
$
40,765

 
10,725

July 31
 
129

 
2

 
$
867

 
175

October 31
 
114

 
3

 
$
3,367

 
710

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
17,085

Fiscal 2010:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
260

 
14

 
$
60,519

 
$
22,750

April 30
 
161

 
7

 
$
53,594

 
15,020

July 31
 
155

 
7

 
$
21,457

 
6,600

October 31
 
144

 
12

 
$
39,209

 
9,119

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
53,489

Income Taxes — Valuation Allowance
Significant judgment is applied in assessing the realizability of deferred tax assets. In accordance with GAAP, a valuation allowance is established against a deferred tax asset if, based on the available evidence, it is more-likely-than-not that such asset will not be realized. The realization of a deferred tax asset ultimately depends on the existence of sufficient taxable income in either the carryback or carryforward periods under tax law. We assess the need for valuation allowances for deferred tax assets based on GAAP's “more-likely-than-not” realization threshold criteria. In our assessment, appropriate consideration is given to all positive and negative evidence related to the realization of the deferred tax assets. Forming a conclusion that a valuation allowance is not needed is difficult when there is negative evidence such as cumulative losses in recent years. This assessment considers, among other matters, the nature, consistency and magnitude of current and cumulative income and losses, forecasts of future profitability, the duration of statutory carryback or carryforward periods, our experience with operating loss and tax credit carryforwards being used before expiration, and tax planning alternatives.
Our assessment of the need for a valuation allowance on our deferred tax assets includes assessing the likely future tax consequences of events that have been recognized in our consolidated financial statements or tax returns. Changes in existing tax laws or rates could affect our actual tax results and our future business results may affect the amount of our deferred tax liabilities or the valuation of our deferred tax assets over time. Our accounting for deferred tax assets represents our best estimate of future events.
Due to uncertainties in the estimation process, particularly with respect to changes in facts and circumstances in future reporting periods (carryforward period assumptions), actual results could differ from the estimates used in our analysis. Our assumptions require significant judgment because the residential home building industry is cyclical and is highly sensitive to changes in economic conditions. If our results of operations are less than projected and there is insufficient objectively verifiable positive evidence to support the “more-likely-than-not” realization of our deferred tax assets, a valuation allowance would be required to reduce or eliminate our deferred tax assets.
Our deferred tax assets consist principally of the recognition of losses primarily driven by inventory impairments and impairments of investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities. In accordance with GAAP, we assessed whether a valuation allowance should be established based on our determination of whether it was “more likely than not” that some portion or all of the deferred tax assets would not be realized. In fiscal 2009, we recorded valuation allowances against

28



substantially all of our deferred tax assets. We believed that the continued downturn in the housing market, the uncertainty as to its length and magnitude, our continued recognition of impairment charges, and our recent operating losses were significant negative evidence of the need for a valuation allowance against our deferred tax assets.
For federal income tax purposes, we are allowed to carry forward tax losses for 20 years and apply such tax losses to future taxable income to realize our federal deferred tax assets. At October 31, 2012, we estimate that we will have federal tax loss carryfowards of approximately $106.3 million resulting from losses incurred for federal income tax purposes during fiscal years 2011 and 2012.
We file tax returns in the various states in which we do business. Each state has its own statutes regarding the use of tax loss carryforwards. Some of the states in which we do business do not allow for the carry forward of losses while others allow for carry forwards for 5 years to 20 years.
At October 31, 2012, we re-evaluated the evidence related to the need for our deferred tax asset valuation allowances and determined that the valuation allowance on our federal deferred tax assets and certain state valuation allowances were no longer needed because of sufficient positive objective evidence. That evidence principally consisted of (i) an indication that the events and conditions that gave rise to significant reported losses in recent years were unlikely to recur in the foreseeable future, (ii) a return to profitability in 2012, (iii) strong backlog evidencing that profitability will likely increase in 2013, and (iv) long net operating loss carryfoward periods that provide evidence that even without significant growth these deferred tax assets will more likely than not be realized. Some of the evidence considered was as follows:
We incurred pre-tax losses from 2008 through 2011 totaling $1.1 billion. These losses were driven primarily by impairments of land, options, inventory and joint ventures which aggregated approximately $1.53 billion during that period. The impairment charges were triggered by the most severe and longest downturn in the U.S. housing industry.
We generated pre-tax income of $132.1 million since May 2011. This included generating pre-tax income in five out of the past six consecutive quarters. Our operations have been profitable in each of the last ten quarters excluding impairment charges.
Impairment charges in fiscal 2012 decreased to $14.7 million due to the strength of the recovery in the housing industry and the lower carrying value of our inventories and joint venture investments as a result of the significant writedowns recognized on them over the period from 2005 through 2011.
The value of new contracts signed in fiscal 2012 increased 59% over fiscal 2011. Our cancellation rate of 4.2% in units and 4.0% in value is the lowest it has been since before 2006.
We are expecting significant revenue and pre-tax income growth in fiscal 2013 which is supported by our backlog as well as the continued improvement in housing industry trends. Our backlog at October 31, 2012, which totaled $1.67 billion, is the highest it has been since 2008. Our backlog is a strong indicator of our next eight months of operations as we require a signed agreement of sale and a significant cash deposit for a sale to be included in backlog. We have objective and verifiable positive evidence, summarized more fully below, that we will continue to be profitable in fiscal 2013 due to our backlog. That positive evidence in tandem with other positive evidence provides the basis for overcoming the negative evidence. Even without growth in our profits over 2012 levels of profitability, we would realize our federal deferred tax assets in less than 10 years.
Based on our belief that the recovery in the housing market will be sustained, we expect to continue to grow revenues and be profitable beyond fiscal 2013.
Housing market indices have shown positive gains over the past year. Unemployment rates continue to decrease from October 2010, consumer confidence has shown continued improvement and housing affordability is at near record levels. The October 2012 seasonally adjusted annual rate of housing starts was 894,000, as compared to 630,000 in October 2011 which represents an increase of 42%. The improvement in the housing market has been experienced by all the major public home builders. The financial community and economists are optimistic regarding the housing trends going into 2013.
There is significant pent-up demand for housing that we believe will support a prolonged recovery. According to the U.S. Census Bureau, during the period 1970 through 2007, total housing starts in the United States averaged approximately 1.26 million per year, while in the period 2008 through 2011, total housing starts averaged approximately 0.66 million per year. In addition, based on the trend of household formations in relation to population

29



growth during the period 2000 through 2007, the number of household formations in the four year period of 2008 through 2011 was approximately 2.3 million less than would have been expected.
We believe that the demographics of the move-up, empty-nester, active-adult, age-qualified and second-home upscale markets will provide us with the potential for growth in the coming decade. According to the U.S. Census Bureau, the number of households earning $100,000 or more (in constant 2011 dollars) at September 2011 stood at 25.4 million, or approximately 17.3% of all U.S. households. This group has grown at three times the rate of increase of all U.S. households since 1980. According to Harvard University's June 2012 "The State of the Nation's Housing", the growth and aging of the current population and assuming the economic recovery is sustained over the next few years supports the addition of about one million new household formations per year during the next decade.
We have emerged from the downturn with reduced competition and thus an increased market share. We believe that many home builders in the areas in which we operate are no longer in business and that access to capital by the remaining ones is already severely constrained. The seasonally adjusted annual rate of housing starts in October 2012 increased 42% over the October 2011 rate, whereas the increase in the number of our signed contracts in fiscal 2012 was 49%. The excess of our contracts signed versus the housing starts evidence the additional market share we have gained over the past year.
Revenue and Cost Recognition
The construction time of our homes is generally less than one year, although some homes may take more than one year to complete. Revenues and cost of revenues from these home sales are recorded at the time each home is delivered and title and possession are transferred to the buyer. For detached homes, closing normally occurs shortly after construction is substantially completed.
For our standard attached and detached homes, land, land development and related costs, both incurred and estimated to be incurred in the future, are amortized to the cost of homes closed based upon the total number of homes to be constructed in each community. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated number of homes to be constructed or in the estimated costs subsequent to the commencement of delivery of homes are allocated to the remaining undelivered homes in the community. Home construction and related costs are charged to the cost of homes closed under the specific identification method. The estimated land, common area development and related costs of master planned communities, including the cost of golf courses, net of their estimated residual value, are allocated to individual communities within a master planned community on a relative sales value basis. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated number of homes to be constructed or in the estimated costs are allocated to the remaining home sites in each of the communities of the master planned community.
For high-rise/mid-rise projects, land, land development, construction and related costs, both incurred and estimated to be incurred in the future, are generally amortized to the cost of units closed based upon an estimated relative sales value of the units closed to the total estimated sales value. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated total costs or revenues of the project are allocated to the remaining units to be delivered.
Forfeited customer deposits are recognized in other income-net in our Consolidated Statements of Operations in the period in which we determine that the customer will not complete the purchase of the home and we have the right to retain the deposit.
Sales Incentives: In order to promote sales of our homes, we grant our home buyers sales incentives from time-to-time. These incentives will vary by type of incentive and by amount on a community-by-community and home-by-home basis. Incentives that impact the value of the home or the sales price paid, such as special or additional options, are generally reflected as a reduction in sales revenues. Incentives that we pay to an outside party, such as paying some or all of a home buyer’s closing costs, are recorded as an additional cost of revenues. Incentives are recognized at the time the home is delivered to the home buyer and we receive the sales proceeds.
OFF-BALANCE SHEET ARRANGEMENTS
We have investments in and advances to various unconsolidated entities. At October 31, 2012, we had investments in and advances to these entities of $330.6 million, and were committed to invest or advance $97.0 million to these entities if they require additional funding. In addition, we have guaranteed approximately $9.8 million of payments under a ground lease for one of the unconsolidated entities. Our investments in these entities are accounted for using the equity method.
The trends, uncertainties or other factors that have negatively impacted our business and the industry in general have also impacted the unconsolidated entities in which we have investments. We review each of our investments on a quarterly basis for indicators of impairment. A series of operating losses of an investee, the inability to recover our invested capital, or other

30



factors may indicate that a loss in value of our investment in the unconsolidated entity has occurred. If a loss exists, we further review to determine if the loss is other than temporary, in which case, we write down the investment to its fair value. The evaluation of our investment in unconsolidated entities entails a detailed cash flow analysis using many estimates, including, but, not limited to expected sales pace, expected sales prices, expected incentives, costs incurred and anticipated, sufficiency of financing and capital, competition, market conditions and anticipated cash receipts, in order to determine projected future distributions. Each of the unconsolidated entities evaluates its inventory in a similar manner as we do. See “Critical Accounting Policies — Inventory” in this MD&A for more detailed disclosure on our evaluation of inventory. If a valuation adjustment is recorded by an unconsolidated entity related to its assets, our proportionate share is reflected in (loss) income from unconsolidated entities with a corresponding decrease to our investment in unconsolidated entities. During fiscal 2011, based upon our evaluation of the fair value of our investments in unconsolidated entities, we determined, due to the continued deterioration of the market in which some of our unconsolidated entities operate, that there was an other than temporary impairment of our investments in these unconsolidated entities. Based on this determination, we recognized $40.9 million of impairment charges against the carrying value of our investments in fiscal 2011.
On October 27, 2011, a bankruptcy court issued an order confirming a plan of reorganization for South Edge, LLC (“South Edge”), a Nevada land development joint venture, which was the subject of an involuntary bankruptcy petition filed in December 2010. Pursuant to the plan of reorganization, South Edge settled litigation regarding a loan made by a syndicate of lenders to South Edge having a principal balance of $327.9 million, for which we had executed certain completion guarantees and conditional repayment guarantees. The confirmed plan of reorganization provided for a cash settlement to the lenders, the acquisition of land by us and the other members of South Edge that are parties to the agreement, and the resolution of all claims among members of the lending syndicate representing 99% of the outstanding amounts due under the loan, the bankruptcy trustee and the members of South Edge that are parties to the agreement. In November 2011, we made a payment of $57.6 million as our share of the settlement. We believe we have made adequate provision at October 31, 2012 for any remaining exposure to lenders that are not parties to the agreement. Our carrying value of our investment in Inspirada Builders, LLC, a successor entity to South Edge, LLC, is carried at nominal value.
In December 2011, we entered into a joint venture to develop a high-rise luxury for-sale/rental project in the metro-New York market. At October 31, 2012, we had $87.3 million invested in this joint venture and were committed to make additional contributions of $37.5 million. Under the terms of the agreement, upon completion of the construction of the building, we will acquire ownership of the top 18 floors of the building to sell, for our own account, luxury condominium units and our partner will receive ownership of the lower floors containing residential for-lease units and retail space.
In the third quarter of fiscal 2012, we acquired a 50% interest in an existing land joint venture for approximately $110.0 million. The joint venture intends to develop over 2,000 home sites in Orange County, California, on land that it owns. The joint venture expects to borrow additional funds to complete the development of this project. In November 2012, we entered into an agreement with our partner in this joint venture to acquire approximately 800 lots. As part of this November 2012 agreement, each partner committed to contribute $10.0 million to the joint venture if needed.
In addition, in the third quarter of fiscal 2012, we invested in a joint venture in which we have a 50% interest that will develop a high-rise luxury condominium/hotel project in the metro-New York market. At October 31, 2012, we had $5.4 million invested in this joint venture and expect to make additional investments of approximately $47.7 million for the development of this property. The joint venture expects to borrow additional funds to complete the construction of this project. We have also guaranteed approximately $9.8 million of payments under a ground lease on this project.

In the fourth quarter of fiscal 2012, we invested in a joint venture in which we have a 50% interest that will develop a multi-family residential apartment project containing approximately 398 units. At October 31, 2012, the Company had an investment of $15.4 million in this joint venture. The joint venture expects to borrow funds to complete the construction of this project. The Company does not have any additional commitment to fund this joint venture.
Pursuant to the Securities and Exchange Commission Regulation S-X, TMF Kent Partners, LLC (“TMF”) and KTL 303 LLC (“KTL”) were deemed significant joint ventures for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2011. We have a 50% ownership interest in TMF and KTL. For fiscal 2012, TMF and KTL were not deemed to be significant joint ventures.
TMF was formed to construct and market two luxury condominium buildings comprising a total of 450 residential units and a parking garage located in Brooklyn, New York. Building 1, comprised of 180 units, was completed in fiscal 2008 and was substantially settled out as of October 31, 2010. TMF began construction of Building 2, comprised of 270 units, in fiscal 2008 and commenced settlement of units in October 2010. As of October 31, 2012, five units in Building 2 have not been settled. TMF expects Building 2 to be substantially settled out by the end of the second quarter of fiscal 2013.


31



KTL was formed to construct and market a luxury condominium building comprising 128 residential units and approximately 14,500 square feet of commercial space located in Manhattan, New York. KTL began construction of the building in fiscal 2008 and commenced settling units in fiscal 2010. As of October 31, 2012, KTL had no remaining units to settle.
RESULTS OF OPERATIONS
The following table compares certain items in our Consolidated Statement of Operations for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010 ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
$
 
%
 
$
 
%
 
$
 
%
Revenues
1,882.8

 
 
 
1,475.9

 
 
 
1,494.8

 
 
Cost of revenues
1,532.1

 
81.4
 
1,260.8

 
85.4
 
1,376.6

 
92.1
Selling, general and administrative
287.3

 
15.3
 
261.4

 
17.7
 
263.2

 
17.6
Interest expense

 
 
1.5

 
0.1
 
22.8

 
1.5
 
1,819.4

 
96.6
 
1,523.6

 
103.2
 
1,662.5

 
111.2
Income (loss) from operations
63.4

 
 
 
(47.7
)
 
 
 
(167.8
)
 
 
Other:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Income (loss) from unconsolidated entities
23.6

 
 
 
(1.2
)
 
 
 
23.5

 
 
Other income - net
25.9

 
 
 
23.4

 
 
 
28.3

 
 
Expenses related to early retirement of debt


 
 
 
(3.8
)
 
 
 
(1.2
)
 
 
Income (loss) before income taxes
112.9

 
 
 
(29.4
)
 
 
 
(117.2
)
 
 
Income tax benefit
(374.2
)
 
 
 
(69.2
)
 
 
 
(113.8
)
 
 
Net income (loss)
487.1

 
 
 
39.8

 
 
 
(3.4
)
 
 
Note: Amounts may not add due to rounding.
FISCAL 2012 COMPARED TO FISCAL 2011
REVENUES AND COST OF REVENUES
Revenues in fiscal 2012 were higher than those for fiscal 2011 by approximately $406.9 million, or 27.6%. This increase was primarily attributable to an increase in the number of homes delivered. In fiscal 2012, we delivered 3,286 homes with a value of $1.88 billion, as compared to 2,611 homes in fiscal 2011 with a value of $1.48 billion. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to the higher number of homes in backlog at the beginning of fiscal 2012, as compared to the beginning of fiscal 2011, the increased number of homes delivered from available inventory, the 37.1% increase in the number of net contracts signed in the first six months of fiscal 2012, as compared to the comparable period of fiscal 2011, and deliveries from our November 2011 acquisition of CamWest. In fiscal 2012, we delivered 201 homes with a sales value of $99.7 million from our CamWest operations.
Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues was 81.4% in fiscal 2012, as compared to 85.4% in fiscal 2011. We recognized inventory impairment charges and write-offs of $14.7 million in fiscal 2012 and $51.8 million in fiscal 2011. Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues, excluding impairments, was 80.6% of revenues in fiscal 2012, as compared to 81.9% in fiscal 2011. The decrease in cost of revenues, excluding inventory impairment charges, as a percentage of revenue in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was due primarily to lower interest costs in fiscal 2012 and increased deliveries in fiscal 2012 from two of our high-rise buildings which had significantly higher margins than our normal product, offset, in part, by the impact on costs from the application of purchase accounting on the homes delivered from the acquisition of CamWest in November 2011. In fiscal 2012 and 2011, interest cost as a percentage of revenues was 4.6% and 5.3%, respectively.
SELLING, GENERAL AND ADMINISTRATIVE EXPENSES (“SG&A”)
SG&A increased by $25.9 million in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. As a percentage of revenues, SG&A was 15.3% in fiscal 2012, as compared to 17.7% in fiscal 2011. The increase in SG&A was due primarily to increased compensation costs and increased sales and marketing costs. The increased compensation costs and increased sales and marketing costs were due primarily to the increased number of communities we had open in fiscal 2012, the increase in net sales contracts taken and the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. The decline in SG&A, as a percentage of revenues, was due to SG&A increasing by 9.9% while revenues increased 27.6%. The decline in the SG&A percentage was due in part to only a portion of these expenses varying directly with the amount of revenues recognized while an additional portion of these expenses were semi-fixed.

32



INTEREST EXPENSE
Interest incurred on average home building indebtedness in excess of average qualified assets is charged directly to the Consolidated Statement of Operations in the period incurred. Interest expensed directly to the Consolidated Statement of Operations in fiscal 2011 was $1.5 million. Due to the increase in qualified assets, we did not have any directly expensed interest from home building indebtedness in fiscal 2012.
INCOME (LOSS) FROM UNCONSOLIDATED ENTITIES
We are a participant in several unconsolidated entities. We recognize our proportionate share of the earnings and losses from these entities. The trends, uncertainties or other factors that have negatively impacted our business and the industry in general, and which are discussed in the “Overview” section of this MD&A, have also impacted the unconsolidated entities in which we have investments. Most of our unconsolidated entities are land development projects or high-rise/mid-rise construction projects and do not generate revenues and earnings for a number of years during the development of the property. Once development is complete, these unconsolidated entities will generally, over a relatively short period of time, generate revenues and earnings until all of the assets of the entity are sold. Because there is not a steady flow of revenues and earnings from these entities, the earnings recognized from these entities will vary significantly from quarter-to-quarter and year-to-year.
In fiscal 2012, we recognized $23.6 million of income from unconsolidated entities, as compared to $1.2 million of loss in fiscal 2011. The loss in fiscal 2011 included $40.9 million of impairment charges that we recognized on our investments in unconsolidated entities. No impairment charges were recognized in fiscal 2012. In fiscal 2012, we recognized a $2.3 million recovery of costs we previously incurred. The $18.4 million decrease in income in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, excluding the impairment charges recognized in fiscal 2011 and the recovery recognized in fiscal 2012, was due principally to lower income generated from two of our condominium joint ventures, primarily due to the delivery of fewer units in fiscal 2012 than in fiscal 2011, a distribution received in fiscal 2011 from the Toll Brothers Realty Trust in excess of our cost basis in it, and lower income realized from our structured asset joint venture in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011 due primarily to the favorable settlement in fiscal 2011 of a large distress loan. The decrease in the number of units delivered in fiscal 2012 was due to fewer units being available for delivery due to the sellout or near sellout of units in those condominium joint ventures in the early part of fiscal 2012.
OTHER INCOME - NET
Other income - net includes the gains and losses from our ancillary businesses, interest income, management fee income, retained customer deposits, income/losses on land sales and other miscellaneous items.
In fiscal 2012 and 2011, other income - net was $25.9 million and $23.4 million, respectively. The increase in other income - net in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was due to increased income from our ancillary operations, primarily from our Gibraltar operations and improved performance from our golf operations in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, as well as increases in retained customer deposits and rental income in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. These increases were offset, in part, by lower management fee income, lower interest income and a profit participation payment received in fiscal 2011 from a fiscal 2009 sale of a non-core asset.
EXPENSES RELATED TO EARLY RETIREMENT OF DEBT
In fiscal 2011, we purchased $55.1 million of our senior notes in the open market at various prices and expensed $3.8 million related to the premium paid on, and other debt redemption costs of, our senior notes. In fiscal 2012, we did not have any expenses related to the early retirement of debt.
INCOME BEFORE INCOME TAXES
In fiscal 2012 and 2011, we reported income before income tax benefit of $112.9 million, as compared to a loss before income tax benefit of $29.4 million in fiscal 2011.
INCOME TAX BENEFIT
We recognized a $374.2 million tax benefit in fiscal 2012, including the reversal of $394.7 million of federal and state deferred tax asset valuation allowances. See “Critical Accounting Policies - Income Taxes - Valuation Allowance” above for information regarding the reversal of valuation allowances against our net deferred tax assets.
Excluding the reversal of the deferred tax valuation allowances, we recognized a tax provision of $20.5 million. Based upon the federal statutory rate of 35%, our federal tax provision would have been $39.5 million. The difference between the tax

33



provision excluding the reversal of deferred tax valuation allowances and the tax provision based on the federal statutory rate was due primarily to the reversal of $34.2 million of previously accrued taxes on uncertain tax positions (net of federal tax provision) due to the expiration of statute of limitations of the applicable filings or the completion of audits during fiscal 2012, offset, in part, by the recognition $4.7 million of state income tax provision (net of federal tax benefit), a $5.5 million provision on uncertain tax positions (net of federal tax provision) taken in fiscal 2012 and $5.0 million of accrued interest and penalties.
We recognized a $69.2 million tax benefit in fiscal 2011. Based upon the federal statutory rate of 35%, our tax benefit would have been $10.3 million. The difference between the tax benefit recognized and the tax benefit based on the federal statutory rate was due primarily to the reversal of $52.3 million of previously accrued taxes on uncertain tax positions that were resolved during fiscal 2011, a reversal of prior valuation allowances of $25.7 million that were no longer needed, an increase of deferred tax assets, net of $25.9 million and a tax benefit for state income taxes, net of federal benefit of $1.0 million. The impact of these items were offset, in part, by $43.9 million of net new deferred tax valuation allowances and $3.1 million of accrued interest and penalties.
FISCAL 2011 COMPARED TO FISCAL 2010
REVENUES AND COST OF REVENUES
Revenues for fiscal 2011 were lower than those for fiscal 2010 by approximately $18.9 million, or 1.3%. This decrease was primarily due to a decrease in the number of homes delivered. The decrease in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to the lower number of homes in backlog at the beginning of fiscal 2011, as compared to the beginning of fiscal 2010.
Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues was 85.4% in fiscal 2011, as compared to 92.1% in fiscal 2010. In fiscal 2011 and 2010, we recognized inventory impairment charges and write-offs of $51.8 million and $115.3 million, respectively. Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues, excluding impairments, was 81.9% of revenues in fiscal 2011, as compared to 84.4% in fiscal 2010. The decrease in cost of revenues, excluding inventory impairment charges, as a percentage of revenue in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was due primarily to lower costs, as a percentage of revenues, on the homes delivered in fiscal 2011 than those delivered in fiscal 2010. The lower percentage was primarily due to the delivery of fewer quick-delivery homes in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, as our supply of quick-delivery homes has dwindled, the reduction in costs realized from our new centralized purchasing initiatives, and reduced costs realized in fiscal 2011 because fewer homes were delivered from certain higher cost communities, as compared to fiscal 2010, as these communities delivered their final homes. Generally, the cost, as a percentage of revenues, of a quick-delivery home is higher than our standard contract and build homes (“to be built homes”). The reduction in costs was offset, in part, by higher interest costs in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. In fiscal 2011 and 2010, interest cost as a percentage of revenues was 5.3% and 5.1%, respectively. The higher interest cost as a percentage of revenue was due to inventory generally being held for a longer period of time and, over the past several years, fewer qualifying assets to which interest can be allocated which resulted in higher amounts of capitalized interest allocated to qualifying inventory.
SELLING, GENERAL AND ADMINISTRATIVE EXPENSES
SG&A decreased by $1.9 million in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. As a percentage of revenues, SG&A was 17.7% in fiscal 2011, as compared to 17.6% in fiscal 2010. The increase in SG&A, as a percentage of revenues, was due primarily to increased compensation costs and increased sales and marketing costs, offset, in part, by an insurance claim recovery and the reversal of previously accrued costs due to changes in estimates. The increased compensation and sales and marketing costs were due primarily to the increased number of communities we had open in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
INTEREST EXPENSE
Interest incurred on average home building indebtedness in excess of average qualified inventory is charged directly to the Consolidated Statement of Operations in the period incurred. Interest expensed directly to the Consolidated Statement of Operations in fiscal 2011 and fiscal 2010 was $1.5 million and $22.8 million, respectively. The decrease in the amount of interest expensed directly was due to a higher amount of qualified inventory and a lower amount of debt in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. Due to the increase in qualified inventory and the decrease of our indebtedness in the last six months of fiscal 2011, we did not have any directly expensed interest in that period.

34



(LOSS) INCOME FROM UNCONSOLIDATED ENTITIES
We are a participant in several joint ventures. We recognize our proportionate share of the earnings and losses from these entities. The trends, uncertainties or other factors that have negatively impacted our business and the industry in general, and which are discussed in the “Overview” section of this MD&A, have also impacted the unconsolidated entities in which we have investments. Most of our joint ventures are land development projects or high-rise/mid-rise construction projects and do not generate revenues and earnings for a number of years during the development of the property. Once development is complete, the joint ventures will generally, over a relatively short period of time, generate revenues and earnings until all of the assets of the entity are sold. Because there is not a steady flow of revenues and earnings from these entities, the earnings recognized from these entities will vary significantly from year to year.
In fiscal 2011, we recognized $1.2 million of losses from unconsolidated entities, as compared to $23.5 million of income in fiscal 2010. The loss in fiscal 2011 included $40.9 million of impairment charges that we recognized on our investments in unconsolidated entities. No impairment charges were recognized in fiscal 2010. See “Off-Balance Sheet Arrangements” in this MD&A for information related to these impairment charges. The income from unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2011, excluding the impairment charges recognized, was $39.7 million in fiscal 2011, as compared to $23.5 million in fiscal 2010. The increase was due principally to higher income generated in fiscal 2011 from two of our high-rise construction ventures which had significantly more deliveries in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, income generated from our structured asset joint venture and distributions in fiscal 2011 from ventures in excess of our cost basis in the ventures of $7.3 million, offset, in part, by the reversal in fiscal 2010 of $11.0 million of accrued costs related to litigation against us and an unconsolidated entity in which we had an investment, due to settlement of the litigation for an amount that was less than we had previously estimated.
OTHER INCOME - NET
For fiscal 2011 and 2010, other income - net was $23.4 million and $28.3 million, respectively. The decrease in interest and other income in fiscal 2011 was primarily due to a decline of $9.1 million of retained customer deposits in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by increased management fee income, an increase in interest income and a profit participation payment received in fiscal 2011 from a fiscal 2009 sale of a non-core asset, as compared to fiscal 2010.
EXPENSES RELATED TO EARLY RETIREMENT OF DEBT
In fiscal 2011, we purchased $55.1 million of our senior notes in the open market at various prices and expensed $3.8 million related to the premium paid on, and other debt redemption costs of, our senior notes.
In fiscal 2010, we purchased $45.5 million of our senior notes in open market purchases at various prices and expensed $1.2 million related to the premium paid and other debt redemption costs of our senior notes and the write-off of the unamortized costs related to our revolving credit facility that was terminated in October 2010.
LOSS BEFORE INCOME TAXES
For fiscal 2011, we reported a loss before income tax benefit of $29.4 million, as compared to a loss before income tax benefit of $117.2 million in fiscal 2010.
INCOME TAX BENEFIT
We recognized a $69.2 million tax benefit in fiscal 2011. Based upon the federal statutory rate of 35%, our tax benefit would have been $10.3 million. The difference between the tax benefit recognized and the tax benefit based on the federal statutory rate was due primarily to the reversal of $52.3 million of previously accrued taxes on uncertain tax positions that were resolved during fiscal 2011, a reversal of prior valuation allowances of $25.7 million that were no longer needed, an increase of deferred tax assets, net, of $25.9 million and a tax benefit for state income taxes, net of federal benefit of $1.0 million, offset, in part, by $43.9 million of net new deferred tax valuation allowance and $3.1 million of accrued interest and penalties.
We recognized a $113.8 million tax benefit in fiscal 2010. Based upon the federal statutory rate of 35%, our tax benefit would have been $41.0 million. The difference between the tax benefit recognized and the tax benefit based on the federal statutory rate was due primarily to the reversal of prior tax provisions of $39.5 million due to the expiration of statutes and settlements, a reversal of prior valuation allowances of $128.6 million that were no longer needed, and a tax benefit for state income taxes, net of federal benefit of $3.8 million offset, in part, by an increase in unrecognized tax benefit of $35.6 million, and a net new deferred tax valuation allowance of $55.5 million and $9.3 million of accrued interest and penalties.
The large reversal of valuation allowances previously recognized in fiscal 2010 was due to our recovery of certain deferred tax assets through our ability to carryback fiscal 2010 tax losses to prior years and receive a refund of the applicable federal taxes.

35



The recovery of deferred tax assets principally related to inventory impairments and impairments of investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities recognized for income tax purposes in fiscal 2010 that were recognized for book purposes in prior years.
CAPITAL RESOURCES AND LIQUIDITY
Funding for our business has been, and continues to be, provided principally by cash flow from operating activities before inventory additions, unsecured bank borrowings and the public debt and equity markets. At October 31, 2012, we had $1.22 billion of cash, cash equivalents and marketable securities on hand and approximately $814.9 million available under our $885 million revolving credit facility which extends to October 2014. Cash used in operating activities during fiscal 2012 was $169.0 million primarily from the acquisition of inventory, the origination of mortgage loans, net of sales to outside investors, and the reduction of our accounts payable and accrued expenses, offset in part, from pre-tax income from operations. In fiscal 2012, cash used in our investing activities was $563.1 million, including $580.0 million of purchases of marketable securities, $144.7 million for the acquisition of the assets of CamWest, $217.2 million to fund new joint venture projects, $30.1 million for investments in a non-performing loan portfolio and $14.5 million for the purchase of property and equipment. The cash used in investing activities was offset, in part, by $368.3 million of sales and redemptions of marketable securities, $55.1 million of cash received as returns on our investments in unconsolidated entities and in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate. We generated $604.6 million of cash from financing activities in fiscal 2012, primarily from the issuance of $300 million of 5.875% Senior Notes due 2022 in February 2012, the issuance of $287.5 million of 0.5% Senior Exchangeable Notes due 2017 in September 2012, $33.7 million from the proceeds of our stock-based benefit plans and $15.3 million of net new borrowings under our mortgage company warehouse facility. The cash provided by financing activities was offset, in part, by $28.4 million of cash used to repay loans payable, net of new borrowings.
At October 31, 2011, we had $1.14 billion of cash and cash equivalents and marketable securities on hand and approximately $784.7 million available under our $885 million revolving credit facility that extends to October 2014. In fiscal 2011, cash flow provided by operating activities was $52.9 million. Cash provided by operating activities during fiscal 2011 was primarily from our earnings before inventory and joint venture impairments, depreciation and amortization, the receipt of a $154.3 million federal income tax refund and a decrease in restricted cash, offset, in part, by an increase in inventory. We used $74.5 million of cash in our investing activities in fiscal 2011, primarily for investments made in non-performing loan portfolios and marketable securities and the purchase of property, construction and office equipment, offset, in part, by the return of investments from unconsolidated entities and from our non-performing loan portfolios. We also used $111.1 million of cash in financing activities in fiscal 2011, principally for the $58.8 million redemption of senior notes, the net repayment of $31.4 million of loans payable and the purchase of $49.1 million of treasury stock, offset, in part by proceeds received from our stock-based benefit plans.

At October 31, 2010, we had $1.24 billion of cash and cash equivalents and marketable securities on hand, a decrease of $672.0 million compared to October 31, 2009. In fiscal 2010, cash flow used in operating activities was $146.3 million. Cash used in operating activities during fiscal 2010 was primarily used to acquire inventory, collateralize approximately $54.4 million of letters of credit and fund an increase in mortgage loan originations in excess of mortgage loan sales, offset, in part, by cash flow generated from our earnings before inventory impairments, depreciation and amortization. We used $151.4 million of cash in our investing activities in fiscal 2010, primarily for investments in marketable securities and for investments made in our unconsolidated entities. We also used $471.0 million of cash in financing activities in fiscal 2010, principally for the repayment of our $331.7 million bank term loan, $94.0 million for the redemption of senior and senior subordinated notes and repayment of $103.2 million of other loans payable, offset, in part, by $45.4 million of net borrowings on our mortgage company warehouse loan, $7.6 million of proceeds from stock-based benefit plans and $5.0 million of tax benefits from stock-based compensation.
In general, our cash flow from operating activities assumes that, as each home is delivered, we will purchase a home site to replace it. Because we own several years’ supply of home sites, we do not need to buy home sites immediately to replace those that we deliver. In addition, we generally do not begin construction of our detached homes until we have a signed contract with the home buyer, although in the past several years, due to the high cancellation rate of customer contracts and the increase in the number of attached-home communities from which we were operating (all of the units of which are generally not sold prior to the commencement of construction), the number of speculative homes in our inventory increased significantly. Should our business remain at its current level or decline, we believe that our inventory levels would decrease as we complete and deliver the homes under construction but do not commence construction of as many new homes, as we complete the improvements on the land we already own and as we sell and deliver the speculative homes that are currently in inventory, resulting in additional cash flow from operations. In addition, we might delay or curtail our acquisition of additional land, as we did during the period April 2006 through January 2010, which would further reduce our inventory levels and cash needs. At October 31, 2012, we owned or controlled through options 40,350 home sites, as compared to 37,497 at October 31, 2011, 34,852 at October 31, 2010 and 91,200 at April 30, 2006, the high point of our home sites owned and controlled. Of the 40,350 home sites owned or

36



controlled through options at October 31, 2012, we owned 31,327. Of our owned home sites, significant improvements were completed on approximately 12,700 of them.
At October 31, 2012, the aggregate purchase price of land parcels under option and purchase agreements was approximately $747.0 million (including $4.1 million of land to be acquired from joint ventures in which we have invested). Of the $747.0 million of land purchase commitments, we had paid or deposited $42.9 million and, if we acquire all of these land parcels, we will be required to pay an additional $704.1 million. The purchases of these land parcels are scheduled over the next several years. We have additional land parcels under option that have been excluded from the aforementioned aggregate purchase amounts since we do not believe that we will complete the purchase of these land parcels and no additional funds will be required from us to terminate these contracts.
During the past several years, we have had a significant amount of cash invested in either short-term cash equivalents or short-term interest-bearing marketable securities. In addition, we have made a number of investments in unconsolidated entities related to the acquisition and development of land for future home sites or in entities that are constructing or converting apartment buildings into luxury condominiums. Our investment activities related to marketable securities and to investments in and distributions of investments from unconsolidated entities are contained in the “Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows” under “Cash flow used in investing activities.”
In October 2010, we entered into an $885 million revolving credit facility with 12 banks, which extends to October 2014. At October 31, 2012, we had no outstanding borrowings under the credit facility but had outstanding letters of credit of approximately $70.1 million. At October 31, 2012, interest would have been payable on borrowings under our credit facility at 2.75% (subject to adjustment based upon our debt rating and leverage ratios) above the Eurodollar rate or at other specified variable rates as selected by us from time to time. We are obligated to pay an undrawn commitment fee of 0.63% (subject to adjustment based upon our debt rating and leverage ratios) based on the average daily unused amount of the credit facility. Under the terms of the credit facility, we are not permitted to allow our maximum leverage ratio (as defined in the credit agreement) to exceed 1.75 to 1.00, and we are required to maintain a minimum tangible net worth (as defined in the credit agreement) of approximately $2.14 billion at October 31, 2012. At October 31, 2012, our leverage ratio was approximately 0.31 to 1.00, and our tangible net worth was approximately $3.07 billion. Based upon the minimum tangible net worth requirement, our ability to pay dividends and repurchase our common stock was limited to an aggregate amount of approximately $1.24 billion at October 31, 2012. In addition, at October 31, 2012, we had $13.0 million of letters of credit outstanding that were not part of our new credit facility; these letters of credit were collateralized by $13.3 million of cash deposits.
We believe that we will be able to continue to fund our current operations and meet our contractual obligations through a combination of our existing cash resources and existing sources of credit. Due to the deterioration of the credit markets and the uncertainties that exist in the economy and for home builders in general, we cannot be certain that we will be able to replace existing financing or find sources of additional financing in the future.
INFLATION
The long-term impact of inflation on us is manifested in increased costs for land, land development, construction and overhead. We generally contract for land significantly before development and sales efforts begin. Accordingly, to the extent land acquisition costs are fixed, increases or decreases in the sales prices of homes will affect our profits. Prior to the recent sustained downturn in the economy and the decline in demand for homes, the sales prices of our homes generally increased over time. Because the sales price of each of our homes is fixed at the time a buyer enters into a contract to purchase a home and because we generally contract to sell our homes before we begin construction, any inflation of costs in excess of those anticipated may result in lower gross margins. We generally attempt to minimize that effect by entering into fixed-price contracts with our subcontractors and material suppliers for specified periods of time, which generally do not exceed one year. The slowdown in the home building industry over the past several years and the decline in the sales prices of our homes, without a corresponding reduction in the costs, have had an adverse impact on our profitability.
In general, housing demand is adversely affected by increases in interest rates and housing costs. Interest rates, the length of time that land remains in inventory and the proportion of inventory that is financed affect our interest costs. If we are unable to raise sales prices enough to compensate for higher costs, or if mortgage interest rates increase significantly, affecting prospective buyers’ ability to adequately finance home purchases, our revenues, gross margins and net income would be adversely affected. Increases in sales prices, whether the result of inflation or demand, may affect the ability of prospective buyers to afford new homes.

37



CONTRACTUAL OBLIGATIONS
The following table summarizes our estimated contractual payment obligations at October 31, 2012 (amounts in millions):
 
2013
 
2014 – 2015
 
2016 – 2017
 
Thereafter
 
Total
Senior notes (a)
$
276.8

 
$
756.4

 
$
555.8

 
$
1,118.6

 
$
2,707.6

Loans payable (a)
32.7

 
25.3

 
10.4

 
60.0

 
128.4

Mortgage company warehouse loan (a)
74.3

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
74.3

Operating lease obligations
9.2

 
14.1

 
8.2

 
5.9

 
37.4

Purchase obligations (b)
531.0

 
327.8

 
62.0

 
72.5

 
993.3

Retirement plans (c)
5.1

 
12.6

 
12.0

 
53.1

 
82.8

Other
0.6

 
0.9

 
0.3

 
 
 
1.8

 
$
929.7

 
$
1,137.1

 
$
648.7

 
$
1,310.1

 
$
4,025.6

(a)
Amounts include estimated annual interest payments until maturity of the debt. Of the amounts indicated, $2.1 billion of the senior notes, $99.8 million of loans payable and $72.7 million of the mortgage company warehouse loan were recorded on the October 31, 2012 Consolidated Balance Sheet.
(b)
Amounts represent our expected acquisition of land under options or purchase agreements and the estimated remaining amount of the contractual obligation for land development agreements secured by letters of credit and surety bonds.
(c)
Amounts represent our obligations under our deferred compensation and supplemental executive retirement plans and our 401(k) salary deferral savings plans. Of the total amount indicated, $57.5 million was recorded on the October 31, 2012 Consolidated Balance Sheet.
GEOGRAPHIC SEGMENTS
We operate in four geographic segments around the United States: the North, consisting of Connecticut, Illinois, Massachusetts, Michigan, Minnesota, New Jersey and New York; the Mid-Atlantic, consisting of Delaware, Maryland, Pennsylvania and Virginia; the South, consisting of Florida, North Carolina and Texas; and the West, consisting of Arizona, California, Colorado, Nevada and Washington. In fiscal 2011, we discontinued the sale of homes in South Carolina. In fiscal 2010, we discontinued the sale of homes in West Virginia and Georgia. The operations of South Carolina, West Virginia and Georgia were immaterial to the South and Mid-Atlantic geographic segments.
The following tables summarize information related to revenues, gross contracts signed, contract cancellations, net contracts signed, total revenues and  income (loss) before income taxes by geographic segment for fiscal years 2012, 2011 and 2010. Information related to backlog at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 and assets by geographic segment at October 31, 2012 and 2011 has also been provided. (Note: Amounts in tables may not add due to rounding.)

Units Delivered and Revenues ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
891

 
718

 
774

 
$
513.7

 
$
381.6

 
$
407.7

Mid-Atlantic
1,025

 
887

 
876

 
564.5

 
499.7

 
488.4

South
626

 
522

 
498

 
366.7

 
285.0

 
264.3

West
744

 
484

 
494

 
437.9

 
309.6

 
334.4

 
3,286

 
2,611

 
2,642

 
$
1,882.8

 
$
1,475.9

 
$
1,494.8


38



Gross Contracts Signed ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
1,051

 
817

 
813

 
$
689.2

 
$
466.6

 
$
418.6

Mid-Atlantic
1,233

 
936

 
902

 
684.0

 
524.1

 
502.5

South
985

 
713

 
551

 
621.2

 
416.6

 
297.1

West
1,072

 
499

 
523

 
670.8

 
300.3

 
352.1

 
4,341

 
2,965

 
2,789

 
$
2,665.2

 
$
1,707.6

 
$
1,570.3

Contracts Canceled ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
58

 
67

 
68

 
$
33.6

 
$
37.0

 
$
35.2

Mid-Atlantic
37

 
37

 
44

 
22.3

 
19.8

 
23.4

South
52

 
45

 
39

 
34.2

 
28.1

 
21.1

West
35

 
32

 
33

 
17.2

 
17.9

 
18.6

 
182

 
181

 
184

 
$
107.3

 
$
102.8

 
$
98.3

Net Contracts Signed ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
993

 
750

 
745

 
$
655.6

 
$
429.6

 
$
383.4

Mid-Atlantic
1,196

 
899

 
858

 
661.7

 
504.3

 
479.1

South
933

 
668

 
512

 
587.0

 
388.5

 
276.0

West
1,037

 
467

 
490

 
653.6

 
282.4

 
333.5

 
4,159

 
2,784

 
2,605

 
$
2,557.9

 
$
1,604.8

 
$
1,472.0

Contract Cancellation Rates:
    (as a percentage of gross contracts signed, based on units and dollars)
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
5.5
%
 
8.2
%
 
8.4
%
 
4.9
%
 
7.9
%
 
8.4
%
Mid-Atlantic
3.0
%
 
4.0
%
 
4.9
%
 
3.3
%
 
3.8
%
 
4.7
%
South
5.3
%
 
6.3
%
 
7.1
%
 
5.5
%
 
6.7
%
 
7.1
%
West
3.3
%
 
6.4
%
 
6.3
%
 
2.6
%
 
6.0
%
 
5.3
%
Total
4.2
%
 
6.1
%
 
6.6
%
 
4.0
%
 
6.0
%
 
6.3
%
Backlog at October 31 ($ amounts in millions):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Units
 
Units
 
Units
 
$
 
$
 
$
North
655

 
553

 
521

 
$
449.2

 
$
307.4

 
$
259.3

Mid-Atlantic
658

 
487

 
475

 
386.2

 
288.9

 
284.4

South
749

 
442

 
296

 
483.5

 
263.2

 
159.7

West
507

 
185

 
202

 
351.0

 
121.6

 
148.7

 
2,569

 
1,667

 
1,494

 
$
1,669.9

 
$
981.1

 
$
852.1


39



Revenues and Income (Loss) Before Income Taxes ($ amounts in millions):
 
Revenues
 
Income (loss) before income taxes
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
North
$
513.7

 
$
381.6

 
$
407.7

 
$
71.8

 
$
42.5

 
$
(2.3
)
Mid-Atlantic
564.5

 
499.7

 
488.4

 
67.8

 
57.6

 
33.9

South
366.7

 
285.0

 
264.3

 
18.0

 
(25.9
)
 
(35.2
)
West
437.9

 
309.6

 
334.4

 
39.4

 
(27.1
)
 
(11.9
)
Corporate and other
 
 
 
 
 
 
(84.1
)
 
(76.5
)
 
(101.7
)
Total
$
1,882.8

 
$
1,475.9

 
$
1,494.8

 
$
112.9

 
$
(29.4
)
 
$
(117.2
)
Corporate and other is comprised principally of general corporate expenses such as the offices of the Executive Chairman, Chief Executive Officer and President, and the corporate finance, accounting, audit, tax, human resources, risk management, marketing and legal groups, directly expensed interest, offset, in part, by interest income, income from our ancillary businesses and income from a number of our unconsolidated entities.
Total Assets ($ amounts in millions):
 
At October 31,
 
2012
 
2011
North
$
1,205.9

 
$
1,060.2

Mid-Atlantic
1,304.8

 
1,160.9

South
821.0

 
760.1

West
913.7

 
650.8

Corporate and other
1,941.7

 
1,423.2

Total
$
6,187.1

 
$
5,055.2

Corporate and other is comprised principally of cash and cash equivalents, marketable securities, deferred tax assets and the assets of the Company’s Gibraltar investments, manufacturing facilities and mortgage subsidiary.
FISCAL 2012 COMPARED TO FISCAL 2011
North
Revenues in fiscal 2012 were higher than those in fiscal 2011 by $132.1 million, or 34.6%. The increase in revenues was primarily attributable to a 24.1% increase in the number of homes delivered and an increase of 8.5% in the average selling price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to the commencement of settlements in fiscal 2012 at two of our high-rise buildings located in the New York and New Jersey urban markets and to a higher backlog at October 31, 2011, as compared to October 31, 2010. The increase in the average price of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily attributable to a shift in the number of homes delivered to more expensive areas and/or products.
The value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012 was $655.6 million, a 52.6% increase from the $429.6 million of net contracts signed during fiscal 2011. This increase was primarily due to a 32.4% increase in the number of net contracts signed and a 15.3% increase in the average value of each net contract. The increase in the number of net contracts signed was primarily due to three high-rise buildings located in the New York and New Jersey urban markets that opened in the second half of fiscal 2011, a 9% increase in the number of selling communities, and an improvement in home buyer demand in fiscal 2012 as compared to fiscal 2011. The increase in the average sales price of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily attributable to sales at two of our high-rise buildings located in the New York urban market that opened in the fourth quarter of fiscal 2011. In fiscal 2012, we signed 74 contracts at these buildings with an average sales value of approximately $1.8 million each, as compared to 12 contacts with an average sales value of approximately $1.6 million in fiscal 2011. Excluding the sales from these two high-rise buildings, the average sales price of our contracts was $567,000 and $556,000 in fiscal 2012 and 2011, respectively.
In fiscal 2012, we reported income before income taxes of $71.8 million, as compared to $42.5 million in fiscal 2011. This increase in income was primarily attributable to higher earnings from the increased revenues and lower cost of revenues as a

40



percentage of revenues, in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, offset, in part, by a decrease in income from unconsolidated entities from $32.2 million in fiscal 2011 to $15.1 million in fiscal 2012 and by higher SG&A. The lower cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues was primarily due to the initial closings at two of our high-rise buildings located in the New York and New Jersey urban markets which had significantly higher margins than our other products and lower inventory impairment charges in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. In fiscal 2012 and 2011, we recognized inventory impairment charges of $1.8 million and $3.8 million, respectively. The $17.1 million decrease in income from unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2012 was due principally to a decrease in income generated from two of our high-rise joint ventures where unit availability has diminished since fiscal 2011 as they have closed most or all of their condominium units.
Mid-Atlantic
Revenues in fiscal 2012 were higher than those in fiscal 2011 by $64.8 million, or 12.9%. The increase in revenues was primarily attributable to a 15.6% increase in the number of homes delivered, partially offset by a 2.3% decrease in the average selling price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to a higher backlog at October 31, 2011, as compared to October 31, 2010, primarily in Pennsylvania and Virgina. The decrease in the average price of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily attributable to a shift in the number of homes delivered to less expensive areas and/or products.
The value of net contracts signed during fiscal 2012 increased by $157.4 million, or 31.2%, from fiscal 2011. The increase was due to a 33.0% increase in the number of net contracts signed partially offset by a 1.4% decrease in the average value of each net contract. The increase in the number of net contracts signed was primarily due to a 10% increase in the number of selling communities and an increase in home buyer demand in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. The decrease in the average sales price of net contracts signed was primarily due to a shift in the number of contracts signed to less expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
We reported income before income taxes in fiscal 2012 and 2011 of $67.8 million and $57.6 million, respectively. The increase in the income before income taxes in fiscal 2012 was primarily due higher earnings from the increased revenues in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, offset, in part, by higher inventory impairment charges and SG&A in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. We recognized inventory impairment charges of $6.1 million and $4.3 million fiscal 2012 and 2011, respectively.
South
Revenues in fiscal 2012 were higher than those in fiscal 2011 by $81.7 million, or 28.7%. This increase was attributable to a 19.9% increase in the number of homes delivered and a 7.3% increase in the average price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to a higher backlog at October 31, 2011, as compared to October 31, 2010, which was the result of an increase in the number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011 as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase in the average price of the homes delivered in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily attributable to a shift in the number of homes delivered to more expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
In fiscal 2012, the value of net contracts signed increased by $198.5 million, or 51.1%, as compared to fiscal 2011. The increase was attributable to increases of 39.7% and 8.2% in the number and average value of net contracts signed, respectively. The increase in the number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to increased demand and an increase in the number of selling communities in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. The increase in the average sales price of net contracts signed was primarily due to a shift in the number of contracts signed to more expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
We reported income before income taxes of $18.0 million in fiscal 2012, as compared to a loss before income taxes of $25.9 million in fiscal 2011. The increase in the income before income taxes was primarily due to lower inventory impairment charges in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, $15.2 million of impairment charges that we recognized on one of our investments in unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2011 which did not recur in 2012, and higher earnings from the increased revenues in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. In fiscal 2012 and 2011, we recognized inventory impairment charges of $6.0 million and $20.8 million, respectively.
West
Revenues in fiscal 2012 were higher than those in fiscal 2011 by $128.3 million, or 41.4%. The increase in revenues was attributable to a 53.7% increase in the number of homes delivered, offset, in part, by an 8.0% decrease in the average sales price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered was primarily attributable to home deliveries in Washington from CamWest. The decrease in the average price of the homes delivered was primarily due to a shift in the

41



number of homes delivered to less expensive products and/or locations, primarily in Arizona and Washington, in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
The value of net contracts signed during fiscal 2012 increased $371.2 million, or 131.4%, as compared to fiscal 2011. This increase was due to a 122.1% increase in the number of net contracts signed and a 4.2% increase in the average value of each net contract signed. The increase in the number of net contracts signed was due to the addition of communities in Washington from CamWest where we entered into 254 net contracts in fiscal 2012 and an increase in the number of selling communities and demand in other states in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011.
In fiscal 2012, we reported income before income taxes of $39.4 million, as compared to a loss before income taxes of $27.1 million in fiscal 2011. The increase in income before income taxes was primarily due to a $25.7 million impairment charge that we recognized on our South Edge investment in fiscal 2011 which did not recur in fiscal 2012, a $22.1 million decrease in inventory impairment charges and write-offs and higher earnings from the increased amount of revenues in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, offset, in part, by higher cost of revenues, excluding inventory impairment charges and interest, as a percentage of revenues, in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. In fiscal 2011, we recognized inventory impairment charges and write-offs of $22.9 million, as compared to $0.8 million in fiscal 2012. Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues, excluding impairments and interest, was 78.2% of revenues in fiscal 2012, as compared to 75.9% in fiscal 2011. The increase in cost of revenues, excluding inventory impairment charges and interest, as a percentage of revenue in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to the impact of purchase accounting on the homes delivered in fiscal 2012 from our acquisition of CamWest, offset, in part, by improved margins in California and Nevada.
Other
In fiscal 2012 and 2011, other loss before income taxes was $84.1 million and $76.5 million, respectively. The increase in the loss in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to higher unallocated SG&A in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, offset, in part, by an increase of income recognized from our Gibraltar operations in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011. The increase in unallocated SG&A in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, was primarily due to increased compensation costs in fiscal 2012, as compared to fiscal 2011, and a reduction in SG&A in fiscal 2011 from an insurance claim recovery.
FISCAL 2011 COMPARED TO FISCAL 2010
North
Revenues in fiscal 2011 were lower than those for fiscal 2010 by $26.1 million, or 6.4%. The decrease in revenues was primarily attributable to a 7.2% decrease in the number of homes delivered. The decrease in the number of homes delivered in the fiscal 2011 period, as compared to the fiscal 2010 period, was primarily due to a lower backlog at October 31, 2010, as compared to October 31, 2009, and a reduction in the number of units closed at several of our high-rise communities where unit availability has dwindled.
The value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011 was $429.6 million, a 12.1% increase from the $383.4 million of net contracts signed during fiscal 2010. This increase was primarily due to an 11.3% increase in the average value of each net contract. The increase in the average sales price of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily attributable to a shift in the number of contracts signed to more expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2011, as compared fiscal 2010.
For the year ended October 31, 2011, we reported income before income taxes of $42.5 million, as compared to a $2.3 million loss for fiscal 2010. The increase in income in fiscal 2011 was primarily attributable to a decrease in impairment charges in fiscal 2011 of $25.6 million, as compared to fiscal 2010, an increase in income from unconsolidated entities of $19.5 million in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, and lower costs on homes delivered in fiscal 2011 than those delivered in fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by higher SG&A expenses and a decline in retained customer deposits in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. In fiscal 2011 and 2010, we recognized inventory impairment charges of $3.8 million and $29.4 million, respectively. The increase in income from unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2011 was due principally to income generated from two of our high-rise construction joint ventures that commenced delivery of units in the second and third quarters of fiscal 2010 and the recovery of an investment in an unconsolidated entity that we had previously impaired.
Mid-Atlantic
Revenues in fiscal 2011 were higher than those of fiscal 2010 by $11.3 million, or 2.3%. This increase was attributable to a 1.3% increase in the number of homes delivered and a 1.1% increase in the average price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due a higher number of net

42



contracts signed in the first six months of fiscal 2011, as compared to the first six months of fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by a lower backlog at October 31, 2010, as compared to October 31, 2009. The increase in the average price of the homes delivered in the fiscal 2011 period, as compared to the fiscal 2010 period, was primarily related to a shift in the number of homes delivered to more expensive products and/or locations.
The value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011 increased by $25.2 million, or 5.3%, from the value of net contracts signed in fiscal 2010. The increase was due to a 4.8% increase in the number of contracts signed and a 0.5% increase in the average value of each net contract signed. The increase in the number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to an increase of 22.3% in the number of net contracts signed, primarily in Virginia, in the three months ended October 31, 2011, as compared to the three months ended October 31, 2010.
We reported income before income taxes for fiscal 2011 and 2010 of $57.6 million and $33.9 million, respectively. The increase in the income before income taxes was primarily due to a decrease in the cost of revenues in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The decrease in the cost of revenues was primarily due to lower costs of the homes delivered in fiscal 2011 than those delivered in fiscal 2010 and lower impairment charges in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The lower costs were due to the delivery of fewer quick-delivery homes in the fiscal 2011 period, as compared to the fiscal 2010 period, as our supply of such homes has dwindled, and to reduced sales incentives in general on the homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. Generally, we give higher sales incentives on quick-delivery homes than on our to-be-built homes. In addition, reduced costs were realized in the fiscal 2011 period because fewer homes were delivered from certain higher cost communities in fiscal 2011, as compared to the fiscal 2010 period, as these communities closed out. We recognized inventory impairment charges of $4.3 million and $11.0 million for fiscal 2011 and 2010, respectively.
South
Revenues in fiscal 2011 were higher than those in fiscal 2010 by $20.7 million, or 7.8%. This increase was attributable to a 4.8% increase in the number of homes delivered and a 2.9% increase in the average price of the homes delivered. The increase in the number of homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to the increased number of communities that we were delivering from in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase in the average price of the homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily attributable to a shift in the number of homes delivered to more expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
In fiscal 2011, the value of net contracts signed increased by $112.5 million, or 40.8%, as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase was attributable to increases of 30.5% and 7.9% in the number and average value of net contracts signed, respectively. The increase in the number of net contracts signed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to an increase in the number of selling communities in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase in the average sales price of net contracts signed was primarily due to a shift in the number of contracts signed to more expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
For fiscal 2011 and 2010, we reported losses before income taxes of $25.9 million and $35.2 million, respectively. The decline in the loss before income taxes was primarily due to lower impairment charges in fiscal 2011 of $16.3 million, as compared to fiscal 2010, and lower costs on homes delivered in fiscal 2011 than those delivered in fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by an increase in the loss from unconsolidated entities of $15.6 million in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues, excluding impairments, was 78.2% of revenues in fiscal 2011, as compared to 80.4% in fiscal 2010. This decrease in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was due primarily to lower sales incentives, primarily on quick-delivery homes, in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase in the loss from unconsolidated entities was primarily due to $15.2 million of impairment charges that we recognized on one of our investments.
West
Revenues in fiscal 2011 were lower than those in fiscal 2010 by $24.8 million, or 7.4%. The decrease in revenues was attributable to a 5.5% decrease in the average sales price of the homes delivered and a 2.0% decrease in the number of homes delivered. The decrease in the average price of the homes delivered was primarily due to a shift in the number of homes delivered to less expensive products and/or locations, primarily in Arizona and Nevada, in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
The value of net contracts signed during fiscal 2011 decreased $51.1 million, or 15.3%, as compared to fiscal 2010. This decrease was due to an 11.2% decrease in the average value of each net contract signed and a 4.7% decrease in the number of net contracts signed. The decrease in the average sales price of net contracts signed was primarily due to a shift in the number of contracts signed to less expensive areas and/or products in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The decrease in the number of net contracts signed was due to an 11.5% decline in the number of selling communities in fiscal 2011, as compared

43



to fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by an increase in housing demand in Arizona in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
We reported losses before income taxes for fiscal 2011 and 2010 of $27.1 million and $11.9 million, respectively. The increase in the loss before income taxes was primarily due to a decrease in income from unconsolidated entities of $35.9 million in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by lower inventory impairment charges and lower cost of revenues, excluding impairments, in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. The increase in the loss from unconsolidated entities was primarily due to $25.7 million of impairment charges that we recognized on one of our investments in unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2011 and the reversal of $11.0 million in fiscal 2010 of accrued costs related to litigation against us and an unconsolidated entity in which we had an investment, due to settlement of the litigation for an amount that was less than we had previously estimated. In fiscal 2011 and fiscal 2010, we recognized inventory impairment charges and write-offs of $22.9 million and $37.7 million, respectively. Cost of revenues as a percentage of revenues, excluding impairments, was 75.9% in fiscal 2011, as compared to 78.4% in fiscal 2010. The decrease in cost of revenues, excluding inventory impairment charges, as a percentage of revenue in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was due primarily to the delivery of fewer quick-delivery homes in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, as our supply of such homes dwindled, and to reduced sales incentives on quick-delivery homes delivered in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010. Generally, we give higher sales incentives on quick-delivery homes than on our to-be-built homes.
Other
For fiscal 2011 and 2010, other loss before income taxes was $76.5 million and $101.7 million, respectively. The decrease in the loss in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, was primarily due to a decrease of $21.2 million of interest directly expensed in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, and an increase of $7.2 million of income recognized from our Gibraltar operations in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010, offset, in part, by an increase of $2.6 million of costs related to the repurchase of our senior notes in open market transactions in fiscal 2011, as compared to fiscal 2010.
ITEM 7A. QUANTITATIVE AND QUALITATIVE DISCLOSURES ABOUT MARKET RISK
We are exposed to market risk primarily due to fluctuations in interest rates. We utilize both fixed-rate and variable-rate debt. For fixed-rate debt, changes in interest rates generally affect the fair market value of the debt instrument, but not our earnings or cash flow. Conversely, for variable-rate debt, changes in interest rates generally do not affect the fair market value of the debt instrument but do affect our earnings and cash flow. We do not have the obligation to prepay fixed-rate debt prior to maturity and, as a result, interest rate risk and changes in fair market value should not have a significant impact on such debt until we are required to refinance such debt.
At October 31, 2012, our debt obligations, principal cash flows by scheduled maturity, weighted-average interest rates and estimated fair value were as follows ($ amounts in thousands):
 
 
Fixed-rate debt
 
Variable-rate debt (a)
Fiscal year of maturity
 
Amount
 
Weighted-
average
interest rate (%)
 
Amount
 
Weighted-
average
interest rate (%)
2013
 
$
193,023

 
5.87%
 
$
72,814

 
2.99%
2014
 
277,942

 
4.90%
 
150

 
0.42%
2015
 
309,953

 
5.12%
 
150

 
0.42%
2016
 
2,097

 
5.75%
 
150

 
0.42%
2017
 
401,918

 
8.90%
 
150

 
0.42%
Thereafter
 
991,378

 
4.53%
 
11,945

 
0.29%
Discount
 
(8,726
)
 
 
 
 
 
 
Total
 
$
2,167,585

 
5.59%
 
$
85,359

 
2.60%
Fair value at October 31, 2012
 
$
2,426,587

 
 
 
$
85,359

 
 
(a)
Based upon the amount of variable-rate debt outstanding at October 31, 2012, and holding the variable-rate debt balance constant, each 1% increase in interest rates would increase the interest incurred by us by approximately $0.9 million per year.
ITEM 8. FINANCIAL STATEMENTS AND SUPPLEMENTARY DATA
Reference is made to the financial statements, listed in Item 15(a)(1) which appear at pages F-1 through F-53 of this report and which are incorporated herein by reference.

44



ITEM 9. CHANGES IN AND DISAGREEMENTS WITH ACCOUNTANTS ON ACCOUNTING AND FINANCIAL DISCLOSURE
Not applicable.
ITEM 9A. CONTROLS AND PROCEDURES
Conclusion Regarding the Effectiveness of Disclosure Controls and Procedures
Any controls and procedures, no matter how well conceived and operated, can provide only reasonable, not absolute, assurance that the objectives of the control system are met. Further, the design of a control system must reflect the fact that there are resource constraints and the benefits of controls must be considered relative to costs. Because of the inherent limitations in all control systems, no evaluation of controls can provide absolute assurance that all control issues and instances of fraud, if any, within the Company have been detected. Because of the inherent limitations in a cost-effective control system, misstatements due to error or fraud may occur and not be detected. However, our disclosure controls and procedures are designed to provide reasonable assurance of achieving their objectives.
Our Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer, with the assistance of management, evaluated the effectiveness of our disclosure controls and procedures, as defined in Rules 13a-15(e) and 15d-15(e) under the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, as amended, (“Exchange Act”) as of the end of the period covered by this report (“Evaluation Date”). Based on that evaluation, our Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer concluded that, as of the Evaluation Date, our disclosure controls and procedures were effective to provide reasonable assurance that information required to be disclosed in our reports under the Exchange Act is recorded, processed, summarized and reported within the time periods specified in the Securities and Exchange Commission’s rules and forms, and that such information is accumulated and communicated to management, including our Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer, as appropriate to allow timely decisions regarding required disclosure.
Management’s Annual Report on Internal Control Over Financial Reporting and Attestation Report of the Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm
Management’s Annual Report on Internal Control Over Financial Reporting and the attestation report of our independent registered public accounting firm on internal control over financial reporting on pages F-1 and F-2, respectively, are incorporated herein.
Changes in Internal Control Over Financial Reporting
There has not been any change in our internal control over financial reporting (as that term is defined in Rules 13a-15(f) and 15d-15(f) under the Exchange Act) during our quarter ended October 31, 2012 that has materially affected, or is reasonably likely to materially affect, our internal control over financial reporting.
ITEM 9B. OTHER INFORMATION
Not applicable.
PART III
ITEM 10. DIRECTORS, EXECUTIVE OFFICERS AND CORPORATE GOVERNANCE
The following table includes information with respect to all persons serving as executive officers as of the date of this Form 10-K. All executive officers serve at the pleasure of our Board of Directors.
Name
 
Age
 
Positions
Robert I. Toll
 
71

 
Executive Chairman of the Board and Director
Douglas C. Yearley, Jr.
 
52

 
Chief Executive Officer and Director
Richard T. Hartman
 
55

 
Executive Vice President and Chief Operating Officer
Martin P. Connor
 
48

 
Senior Vice President, Chief Financial Officer and Treasurer
Robert I. Toll, with his brother Bruce E. Toll, the Vice Chairman of the Board and a Director of Toll Brothers, Inc., co-founded our predecessors’ operations in 1967. Robert I. Toll served as Chairman of the Board and Chief Executive Officer from our inception until June 2010, when he assumed the new position of Executive Chairman of the Board.

45



Douglas C. Yearley, Jr. joined us in 1990 as assistant to the Chief Executive Officer with responsibility for land acquisitions. He has been an officer since 1994, holding the position of Senior Vice President from January 2002 until November 2005, the position of Regional President from November 2005 until November 2009, and the position of Executive Vice President from November 2009 until June 2010 when he was promoted to his current position of Chief Executive Officer. Mr. Yearley was elected a Director of Toll Brothers, Inc. in June 2010.
Richard T. Hartman, joined us in 1980 and served in various positions with us, including Regional President from 2005 through 2011. He was appointed to the positions of Executive Vice President and Chief Operating Officer effective January 1, 2012. In December 2012, Mr. Hartman was appointed to the position of President effective January 1, 2013.
Martin P. Connor joined the Company as Vice President and Assistant Chief Financial Officer in December 2008 and was elected a Senior Vice President in December 2009. Mr. Connor was appointed to his current position of Senior Vice President, Chief Financial Officer and Treasurer in September 2010. From June 2008 to December 2008, Mr. Connor was President of Marcon Advisors LLC, a finance and accounting consulting firm which he founded. From October 2006 to June 2008, Mr. Connor was Chief Financial Officer and Director of Operations for O’Neill Properties, a diversified commercial real estate developer in the Mid-Atlantic area. Prior to October 2006, he spent over 20 years at Ernst & Young LLP as an Audit and Advisory Business Services Partner, responsible for the real estate practice for Ernst & Young LLP in the Philadelphia marketplace. During the period from 1998 to 2005, he served on the Toll Brothers, Inc. engagement.
The other information required by this item will be included in the “Election of Directors” and “Corporate Governance” sections of our Proxy Statement for the 2012 Annual Meeting of Stockholders (the “2012 Proxy Statement”) and is incorporated herein by reference.
Code of Ethics
The Company has adopted a Code of Ethics for Principal Executive Officer and Senior Financial Officers (“Code of Ethics”) that applies to the Company’s principal executive officer, principal financial officer, principal accounting officer, controller and persons performing similar functions designated by the Company’s Board of Directors. The Code of Ethics is available on the Company’s internet website at www.tollbrothers.com under “Investor Relations: Company Information: Corporate Governance.” If the Company were to amend or waive any provision of its Code of Ethics, the Company intends to satisfy its disclosure obligations with respect to any such waiver or amendment by posting such information on its internet website set forth above rather than by filing a Form 8-K.
Indemnification of Directors and Officers
The Company's Certificate of Incorporation and Bylaws provide for indemnification of our directors and officers. We have also entered into individual indemnification agreements with each of our directors.
ITEM 11. EXECUTIVE COMPENSATION
The information required by this item will be included in the “Executive Compensation” section of our 2013 Proxy Statement and is incorporated herein by reference.

46




ITEM 12. SECURITY OWNERSHIP OF CERTAIN BENEFICIAL OWNERS AND MANAGEMENT AND RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS
Except as set forth below, the information required in this item will be included in the “Voting Securities and Beneficial Ownership” section of our 2013 Proxy Statement and is incorporated herein by reference.
The following table provides information as of October 31, 2012, with respect to compensation plans (including individual compensation arrangements) under which our equity securities are authorized for issuance.
Equity Compensation Plan Information
Plan Category
 
Number of securities to
be issued upon exercise
of outstanding
options, warrants
and rights (in thousands)
 
 Weighted-average
exercise price
of outstanding
options, warrants and rights
 
Number of securities
remaining available for future
issuance under equity compensation
plans (excluding securities
reflected in column (a)) (in thousands)
 
 
(a)
 
(b)
 
(c)
Equity compensation plans approved by security holders
 
10,669

 
$
23.23

 
5,489

Equity compensation plans not approved by security holders
 
 
 
 
 
 
Total
 
10,669

 
$
23.23

 
5,489

ITEM 13. CERTAIN RELATIONSHIPS, RELATED TRANSACTIONS AND DIRECTOR INDEPENDENCE
The information required in this item will be included in the “Corporate Governance and “Certain Transactions” sections of our 2013 Proxy Statement and is incorporated herein by reference.
ITEM 14. PRINCIPAL ACCOUNTING FEES AND SERVICES
The information required in this item will be included in the “Ratification of the Re-Appointment of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm” section of the 2013 Proxy Statement and is incorporated herein by reference.

47




PART IV
ITEM 15. EXHIBITS, FINANCIAL STATEMENT SCHEDULES
(a) Financial Statements and Financial Statement Schedules
 
Page
1. Financial Statements
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
2. Financial Statement Schedules
None
Financial statement schedules have been omitted because they are either not applicable or the required information is included in the financial statements or notes hereto.
(b) Exhibits
The following exhibits are included with this report or incorporated herein by reference:
Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
3.1
 
Second Restated Certificate of Incorporation of the Registrant, dated September 8, 2005, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2005.
 
 
 
3.2
 
Certificate of Amendment of the Second Restated Certificate of Incorporation of the Registrant, filed with the Secretary of State of the State of Delaware, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on March 22, 2010.
 
 
 
3.3
 
Certificate of Amendment of the Second Restated Certificate of Incorporation of the Registrant dated as of March 16, 2011 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on March 18, 2011.

48



Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
3.4
 
By-laws of the Registrant, as Amended and Restated June 11, 2008, are hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 13, 2008.
 
 
 
3.5
 
Amendment to the By-laws of the Registrant, dated as of September 24, 2009, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 24, 2009.
 
 
 
3.6
 
Amendment to the By-laws of the Registrant, dated as of June 15, 2011 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 3.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 16, 2011.
 
 
 
4.1
 
Specimen Stock Certificate is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the fiscal year ended October 31, 1991.
 
 
 
4.2
 
Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 among Toll Brothers Finance Corp., as issuer, the Registrant, as guarantor, and Bank One Trust Company, NA, as Trustee, including form of guarantee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on November 27, 2002.
 
 
 
4.3
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of November 15, 2002, relating to $300,000,000 principal amount of 6.875% Senior Notes of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. due 2012, guaranteed on a senior basis by the Registrant and certain subsidiaries of the Registrant is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 of the Registrant’s Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on November 27, 2002.
 
 
 
4.4
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of September 3, 2003, relating to $250,000,000 principal amount of 5.95% Senior Notes of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. due 2013, guaranteed on a senior basis by the Registrant and certain subsidiaries of the Registrant is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 29, 2003.
 
 
 
4.5
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of March 9, 2004, relating to $300,000,000 principal amount of 4.95% Senior Notes of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. due 2014, guaranteed on a senior basis by the Registrant and certain subsidiaries of the Registrant is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on April 1, 2004.
 
 
 
4.6
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of May 26, 2005, relating to $300,000,000 principal amount of 5.15% Senior Notes of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. due 2015, guaranteed on a senior basis by the Registrant and certain subsidiaries of the Registrant is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 8, 2005.
 
 
 
4.7
 
First Supplemental Indenture dated as of May 1, 2003 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and Bank One Trust Company, National Association, as Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.4 of the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-4/A filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 16, 2003, File Nos. 333-103931, 333-103931-01, 333-103931-02, 333-103931-03 and 333-103931-04.
 
 
 
4.8
 
Second Supplemental Indenture dated as of November 3, 2003 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and Bank One Trust Company, National Association, as Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.5 of the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-4/A filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on November 5, 2003, File Nos. 333-109604, 333-109604-01, 333-109604-02, 333-109604-03 and 333-109604-04.

49



Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
4.9
 
Third Supplemental Indenture dated as of January 26, 2004 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2004.
 
 
 
4.10
 
Fourth Supplemental Indenture dated as of March 1, 2004 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2004.
 
 
 
4.11
 
Fifth Supplemental Indenture dated as of September 20, 2004 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.9 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2004.
 
 
 
4.12
 
Sixth Supplemental Indenture dated as of October 28, 2004 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.10 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2004.
 
 
 
4.13
 
Seventh Supplemental Indenture dated as of October 31, 2004 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.11 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2004.
 
 
 
4.14
 
Eighth Supplemental Indenture dated as of January 31, 2005 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2005.
 
 
 
4.15
 
Ninth Supplemental Indenture dated as of June 6, 2005 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2005.
 
 
 
4.16
 
Tenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of August 1, 2005 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.13 of the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-4 filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 29, 2005, File Nos. 333-128683, 333-128683-01, 333-128683-02, 333-128683-03 and 333-128683-04.
 
 
 
4.17
 
Eleventh Supplemental Indenture dated as of January 31, 2006 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2006.
 
 
 
4.18
 
Twelfth Supplemental Indenture dated as of April 30, 2006 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2006.





50



Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
4.19
 
Thirteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of July 31, 2006 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and J.P. Morgan Trust Company, National Association, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.16 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the year ended October 31, 2006.
 
 
 
4.20
 
Fourteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as October 31, 2006 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and The Bank of New York Trust Company, N.A. as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2007.
 
 
 
4.21
 
Fifteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of June 25, 2007 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and The Bank of New York Trust Company, N.A. as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
4.22
 
Sixteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of June 27, 2007 to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule I thereto, and The Bank of New York Trust Company, N.A. as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
4.23
 
Seventeenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of January 31, 2008, to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Trust Company, N.A. as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2009.
 
 
 
4.24
 
Eighteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of October 27, 2011, to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2012.
 
 
 
4.25
 
Nineteenth Supplemental Indenture dated as of November 1, 2011, to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2012.
 
 
 
4.26
 
Twentieth Supplemental Indenture dated as of April 27, 2012, to Indenture dated as of November 22, 2002 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2012.
 
 
 
4.27
 
Indenture, dated as of April 20, 2009, among Toll Brothers Finance Corp., the Registrant and the other guarantors named therein and The Bank of New York Mellon, as trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on April 24, 2009.
 
 
 
4.28
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of April 20, 2009, relating to the $400,000,000 principal amount of 8.910% Senior Notes due 2017 of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. guaranteed on a Senior Basis by the Registrant and certain of its subsidiaries, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on April 24, 2009.
 
 
 
4.29
 
Form of Global Note for Toll Brothers Finance Corp.’s 8.910% Senior Notes due 2017 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.3 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on April 24, 2009.
 
 
 

51



Exhibit Number
 
                                                                                                                                                                                            Description
 
 
 
4.3
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of September 22, 2009, relating to the $250,000,000 principal amount of 6.750% Senior Notes due 2019 of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. guaranteed on a Senior Basis by the Registrant and certain of its subsidiaries, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 22, 2009.
 
 
 
4.31
 
Form of Global Note for Toll Brothers Finance Corp.’s 6.750% Senior Notes due 2019 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 22, 2009.
 
 
 
4.32
 
First Supplemental Indenture dated as of October 27, 2011, to Indenture dated as of April 20, 2009 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.3 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2012.
 
 
 
4.33
 
Second Supplemental Indenture dated as of November 1, 2011, to Indenture dated as of April 20, 2009 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.4 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2012.
 
 
 
4.34
 
Third Supplemental Indenture dated as of April 27, 2012, to Indenture dated as of April 20, 2009 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.2 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2012.
 
 
 
4.35
 
Indenture, dated as of February 7, 2012, among Toll Brothers Finance Corp., the Registrant and the other guarantors named therein and The Bank of New York Mellon, as trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on February 7, 2012.
 
 
 
4.36
 
Authorizing Resolutions, dated as of January 31, 2012, relating to the $300,000,000 principal amount of 5.875% Senior Notes due 2022 of Toll Brothers Finance Corp. guaranteed on a Senior Basis by the Registrant and certain of its subsidiaries, is hereby incorporated by reference Exhibit 4.2 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on February 7, 2012.
 
 
 
4.37
 
Form of Global Note for Toll Brothers Finance Corp.’s 5.875% Senior Notes due 2022 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.3 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on February 7, 2012.
 
 
 
4.38
 
First Supplemental Indenture dated as of April 27, 2012, to Indenture dated as of February 7, 2012 by and among the parties listed on Schedule A thereto, and The Bank of New York Mellon, as successor Trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.3 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 2012.
 
 
 
4.39
 
Indenture, dated as of September 11, 2012, among Toll Brothers Finance Corp., the Registrant and the other guarantors named therein and The Bank of New York Mellon, as trustee, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on September 13, 2012.
 
 
 
4.40
 
Rights Agreement dated as of June 13, 2007, by and between the Registrant and American Stock Transfer & Trust Company, as Rights Agent, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 18, 2007.
 
 
 
10.1
 
Credit Agreement by and among First Huntingdon Finance Corp., the Registrant and the lenders which are parties thereto dated October 22, 2010, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.1 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on October 27, 2010.
 
 
 

52



Exhibit Number
 
                                                                                                                                                                                            Description
 
 
 
10.2*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Employee Stock Purchase Plan (amended and restated effective January 1, 2008) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.31 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the year ended October 31, 2007.
 
 
 
10.3*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan (1998) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4 of the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-8 filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on June 25, 1998, File No. 333-57645.
 
 
 
10.4*
 
Amendment to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan (1998) effective March 22, 2001 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.4 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2001.
 
 
 
10.5*
 
Amendment to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan (1998) effective December 12, 2007 is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.4 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on March 18, 2008.
 
 
 
10.6*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) (amended and restated as of September 17, 2008, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Amendment No. 1 to Toll Brothers, Inc.’s Registration Statement on Form S-8 (No. 333-143367) filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on October 29, 2008.
 
 
 
10.7*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Non-Employee Directors (2007) (amended and restated as of September 17, 2008) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 4.1 of the Registrant’s Amendment No. 1 to Toll Brothers, Inc.’s Registration Statement on Form S-8 (No. 333-144230) filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on October 29, 2008.
 
 
 
10.8*
 
Form of Non-Qualified Stock Option Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.1 of the Registrant’s Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on December 19, 2007.
 
 
 
10.9*
 
Form of Addendum to Non-Qualified Stock Option Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.3 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
10.10*
 
Form of Stock Award Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.4 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
10.11*
 
Form of Restricted Stock Unit Award pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.19 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2008.
 
 
 
10.12*
 
Restricted Stock Unit Award to Robert I. Toll, dated December 19, 2008, pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.20 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2008.
 
 
 
10.13*
 
Restricted Stock Unit Award to Robert I. Toll, dated December 21, 2009, pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007) is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.17 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2009.
 
 
 
10.14*
 
Form of Non-Qualified Stock Option Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan for Non-Employee Directors (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.2 of the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on December 19, 2007.
 
 
 

53



Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
10.15*
 
Form of Addendum to Non-Qualified Stock Option Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Non-Employee Directors (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.6 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
10.16*
 
Form of Stock Award Grant pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Stock Incentive Plan for Non-Employee Directors (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.7 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2007.
 
 
 
10.17*
 
Form of Stock Award Amendment pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Non-Employee Directors (2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.4 of the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended January 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.18*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Cash Bonus Plan (amended and restated as of December 9, 2009) is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.21 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2009.
 
 
 
10.19*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Senior Officer Bonus Plan is hereby incorporated by reference to Addendum C to Toll Brothers, Inc.’s definitive proxy statement on Schedule 14A for the Toll Brothers, Inc. 2010 Annual Meeting of Stockholders held on March 17, 2010 filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on February 1, 2010.
 
 
 
10.20*
 
Toll Brothers, Inc. Supplemental Executive Retirement Plan (amended and restated effective as of December 12, 2007) is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.1 to the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended July 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.21*
 
Agreement dated March 5, 1998 between the Registrant and Bruce E. Toll regarding Mr. Toll’s resignation and related matters is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.2 to the Registrant’s Form 10-Q for the quarter ended April 30, 1998.
 
 
 
10.22*
 
Advisory and Non-Competition Agreement between the Registrant and Bruce E. Toll, dated as of November 1, 2010, is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.34 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.23*
 
Toll Bros., Inc. Non-Qualified Deferred Compensation Plan, amended and restated as of November 1, 2008, is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.45 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2008.
 
 
 
10.24*
 
Amendment Number 1 dated November 1, 2010 to the Toll Bros., Inc. Non-Qualified Deferred Compensation Plan, amended and restated as of November 1, 2008, is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.40 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.25
 
Form of Indemnification Agreement between the Registrant and the members of its Board of Directors, is hereby incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission on March 17, 2009.
 
 
 
10.26*
 
Restricted Stock Unit Award to Douglas C. Yearley, Jr., dated December 20, 2010, pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007), is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.42 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2010.

54



Exhibit Number
 
Description
 
 
 
10.27*
 
Restricted Stock Unit Award to Martin P. Connor, dated December 20, 2010, pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007), is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.43 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.28*
 
Restricted Stock Unit Award to Robert I. Toll, dated December 20, 2010, pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007), is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.44 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2010.
 
 
 
10.29*
 
Form of Performance Based Restricted Stock Unit Award pursuant to the Toll Brothers, Inc. Amended and Restated Stock Incentive Plan for Employees (2007),is incorporated by reference to Exhibit 10.33 of the Registrant’s Form 10-K for the period ended October 31, 2011.
 
 
 
12**
 
Statement re: Computation of Ratios of Earnings to Fixed Charges.
 
 
 
21**
 
Subsidiaries of the Registrant.
 
 
 
23.1**
 
Consent of Ernst & Young LLP, Independent Registered Public Accountant.
 
 
 
23.2**
 
Consent of WeiserMazars LLP, Independent Registered Public Accountant.
 
 
 
31.1**
 
Certification of Douglas C. Yearley, Jr. pursuant to Section 302 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002.
 
 
 
31.2**
 
Certification of Martin P. Connor pursuant to Section 302 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002.
 
 
 
32.1**
 
Certification of Douglas C. Yearley, Jr. pursuant to Section 906 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002.
 
 
 
32.2**
 
Certification of Martin P. Connor pursuant to Section 906 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002.
 
 
 
99.1**
 
Financial Statements of TMF Kent Partners, LLC.
 
 
 
99.2**
 
Financial Statements of KTL 303 LLC.
 
 
 
101.INS**
 
XBRL Instance Document
 
 
 
101.SCH**
 
XBRL Schema Document
 
 
 
101.CAL**
 
XBRL Calculation Linkbase Document
 
 
 
101.LAB**
 
XBRL Labels Linkbase Document
 
 
 
101.PRE**
 
XBRL Presentation Linkbase Document
 
 
 
101.DEF**
 
XBRL Definition Linkbase Document
 
 
 
*
This exhibit is a management contract or compensatory plan or arrangement required to be filed as an exhibit to this report.
 
 
**
Filed electronically herewith.



55



SIGNATURES
Pursuant to the requirements of Section 13 or 15(d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, the Registrant has duly caused this report to be signed on its behalf by the undersigned, thereunto duly authorized, in the Township of Horsham, Commonwealth of Pennsylvania on December 28, 2012.
 
TOLL BROTHERS, INC.
 
 
By:  
/s/ Douglas C. Yearly, Jr.  
 
 
Douglas C. Yearley, Jr. 
 
 
Chief Executive Officer
(Principal Executive Officer) 
Pursuant to the requirements of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, this report has been signed below by the following persons on behalf of the Registrant and in the capacities and on the dates indicated.
Signature
 
Title
 
Date
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Robert I. Toll
 
Executive Chairman of the Board of Directors 
 
December 28, 2012
Robert I. Toll
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Bruce E. Toll 
 
Vice Chairman of the Board and Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Bruce E. Toll
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Douglas C. Yearley, Jr.
 
Chief Executive Officer and Director
 
December 28, 2012
Douglas C. Yearley, Jr.
 
(Principal Executive Officer) 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Richard T. Hartman 
 
Chief Operating Officer and
 
December 28, 2012
Richard T. Hartman
 
Executive Vice President
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Martin P. Connor
 
Senior Vice President, Chief Financial Officer and
 
December 28, 2012
Martin P. Connor
 
Treasurer (Principal Financial Officer)
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Joseph R. Sicree 
 
Senior Vice President and Chief Accounting
 
December 28, 2012
Joseph R. Sicree
 
Officer (Principal Accounting Officer)
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Robert S. Blank 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
 Robert S. Blank
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Edward G. Boehne 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Edward G. Boehne
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Richard J. Braemer 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Richard J. Braemer
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Christine N. Garvey 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Christine N. Garvey
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Carl B. Marbach 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Carl B. Marbach
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Stephen A. Novick 
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
Stephen A. Novick
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
/s/ Paul E. Shapiro
 
Director 
 
December 28, 2012
 
Paul E. Shapiro
 
 
 
 

56




Management’s Annual Report on Internal Control Over Financial Reporting
Our management is responsible for establishing and maintaining adequate internal control over financial reporting, as such term is defined in the Securities Exchange Act Rule 13a-15(f). Internal control over financial reporting is a process designed to provide reasonable assurance regarding the reliability of financial reporting and the preparation of financial statements for external purposes in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles. Internal control over financial reporting includes those policies and procedures that: (i) pertain to the maintenance of records that in reasonable detail accurately and fairly reflect the transactions and dispositions of the assets of the company; (ii) provide reasonable assurance that transactions are recorded as necessary to permit preparation of financial statements in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles, and that receipts and expenditures of the company are being made only in accordance with authorizations of management and directors of the company; and (iii) provide reasonable assurance regarding prevention or timely detection of unauthorized acquisition, use, or disposition of the company’s assets that could have a material effect on the financial statements. Because of its inherent limitations, internal control over financial reporting may not prevent or detect misstatements. Also, projections of any evaluation of effectiveness to future periods are subject to the risk that controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or that the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate.
Under the supervision and with the participation of our management, including our principal executive officer and our principal financial officer, we conducted an evaluation of the effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting based on the framework in Internal Control — Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission. Based on this evaluation under the framework in Internal Control — Integrated Framework, our management concluded that our internal control over financial reporting was effective as of October 31, 2012.
Our independent registered public accounting firm, Ernst & Young LLP, has issued its report, which is included herein, on the effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting.

F-1




Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm
The Board of Directors and Stockholders of Toll Brothers, Inc.
We have audited Toll Brothers, Inc.’s internal control over financial reporting as of October 31, 2012, based on criteria established in Internal Control—Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission (the COSO criteria). Toll Brothers, Inc.’s management is responsible for maintaining effective internal control over financial reporting, and for its assessment of the effectiveness of internal control over financial reporting included in the accompanying Management’s Annual Report on Internal Control Over Financial Reporting. Our responsibility is to express an opinion on the company’s internal control over financial reporting based on our audit.
We conducted our audit in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States). Those standards require that we plan and perform the audit to obtain reasonable assurance about whether effective internal control over financial reporting was maintained in all material respects. Our audit included obtaining an understanding of internal control over financial reporting, assessing the risk that a material weakness exists, testing and evaluating the design and operating effectiveness of internal control based on the assessed risk, and performing such other procedures as we considered necessary in the circumstances. We believe that our audit provides a reasonable basis for our opinion.
A company’s internal control over financial reporting is a process designed to provide reasonable assurance regarding the reliability of financial reporting and the preparation of financial statements for external purposes in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles. A company’s internal control over financial reporting includes those policies and procedures that (1) pertain to the maintenance of records that, in reasonable detail, accurately and fairly reflect the transactions and dispositions of the assets of the company; (2) provide reasonable assurance that transactions are recorded as necessary to permit preparation of financial statements in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles, and that receipts and expenditures of the company are being made only in accordance with authorizations of management and directors of the company; and (3) provide reasonable assurance regarding prevention or timely detection of unauthorized acquisition, use or disposition of the company’s assets that could have a material effect on the financial statements.
Because of its inherent limitations, internal control over financial reporting may not prevent or detect misstatements. Also, projections of any evaluation of effectiveness to future periods are subject to the risk that controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or that the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate.
In our opinion, Toll Brothers, Inc. maintained, in all material respects, effective internal control over financial reporting as of October 31, 2012, based on the COSO criteria.
We also have audited, in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States), the consolidated balance sheets of Toll Brothers, Inc. as of October 31, 2012 and 2011, and the related consolidated statements of operations, changes in equity, and cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended October 31, 2012 of Toll Brothers, Inc. and our report dated December 28, 2012 expressed an unqualified opinion thereon.

/s/ Ernst & Young LLP


Philadelphia, Pennsylvania
December 28, 2012

F-2




Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm
The Board of Directors and Stockholders of Toll Brothers, Inc.
We have audited the accompanying consolidated balance sheets of Toll Brothers, Inc. as of October 31, 2012 and 2011, and the related consolidated statements of operations, changes in equity, and cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended October 31, 2012. These financial statements are the responsibility of the Company’s management. Our responsibility is to express an opinion on these financial statements based on our audits.
We conducted our audits in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States). Those standards require that we plan and perform the audit to obtain reasonable assurance about whether the financial statements are free of material misstatement. An audit includes examining, on a test basis, evidence supporting the amounts and disclosures in the financial statements. An audit also includes assessing the accounting principles used and significant estimates made by management, as well as evaluating the overall financial statement presentation. We believe that our audits provide a reasonable basis for our opinion.
In our opinion, the financial statements referred to above present fairly, in all material respects, the consolidated financial position of Toll Brothers, Inc. at October 31, 2012 and 2011, and the consolidated results of its operations and its cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended October 31, 2012, in conformity with U.S. generally accepted accounting principles.
We also have audited, in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States), Toll Brothers Inc.’s internal control over financial reporting as of October 31, 2011, based on criteria established in Internal Control-Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission and our report dated December 28, 2012 expressed an unqualified opinion thereon.

/s/ Ernst & Young LLP

Philadelphia, Pennsylvania
December 28, 2012



F-3



CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF OPERATIONS
(Amounts in thousands, except per share data)

 
Year ended October 31,
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
 
 
 
 
 
Revenues
$
1,882,781

 
$
1,475,881

 
$
1,494,771

Cost of revenues
1,532,095

 
1,260,770

 
1,376,558

Selling, general and administrative
287,257

 
261,355

 
263,224

Interest expense

 
1,504

 
22,751

 
1,819,352

 
1,523,629

 
1,662,533

Income (loss) from operations
63,429

 
(47,748
)
 
(167,762
)
Other:
 
 
 
 
 
Income (loss) from unconsolidated entities
23,592

 
(1,194
)
 
23,470

Other income - net
25,921

 
23,403

 
28,313

Expenses related to early retirement of debt


 
(3,827
)
 
(1,208
)
Income (loss) before income taxes
112,942

 
(29,366
)
 
(117,187
)
Income tax benefit
(374,204
)
 
(69,161
)
 
(113,813
)
Net income (loss)
$
487,146

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
Income (loss) per share:
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
$
2.91

 
$
0.24

 
$
(0.02
)
Diluted
$
2.86

 
$
0.24

 
$
(0.02
)
Weighted-average number of shares:
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
167,346

 
167,140

 
165,666

Diluted
170,154

 
168,381

 
165,666

See accompanying notes





F-4




CONSOLIDATED BALANCE SHEETS
(Amounts in thousands)
 
October 31,
 
2012
 
2011
ASSETS
 
 
 
Cash and cash equivalents
$
778,824

 
$
906,340

Marketable securities
439,068

 
233,572

Restricted cash
47,276

 
19,760

Inventory
3,761,187

 
3,416,723

Property, construction and office equipment, net
106,214

 
99,712

Receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
148,315

 
105,576

Mortgage loans receivable
86,386

 
63,175

Customer deposits held in escrow
29,579

 
14,859

Investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities
330,617

 
126,355

Investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate
95,522

 
69,174

Deferred tax assets, net of valuation allowances
358,056

 


 
$
6,181,044

 
$
5,055,246

LIABILITIES AND EQUITY
 
 
 
Liabilities
 
 
 
Loans payable
$
99,817

 
$
106,556

Senior notes
2,080,463

 
1,490,972

Mortgage company warehouse loan
72,664

 
57,409

Customer deposits
142,977

 
83,824

Accounts payable
99,911

 
96,817

Accrued expenses
476,350

 
521,051

Income taxes payable
80,991

 
106,066

Total liabilities
3,053,173

 
2,462,695

Equity
 
 
 
Stockholders’ equity
 
 
 
Preferred stock, none issued

 

Common stock, 168,690 and 168,675 shares issued at October 31, 2012 and 2011, respectively
1,687

 
1,687

Additional paid-in capital
404,418

 
400,382

Retained earnings
2,721,397

 
2,234,251

Treasury stock, at cost - 53 shares and 2,946 shares at October 31, 2012 and 2011, respectively
(983
)
 
(47,065
)
Accumulated other comprehensive loss
(4,819
)
 
(2,902
)
Total stockholders’ equity
3,121,700

 
2,586,353

Noncontrolling interest
6,171

 
6,198

Total equity
3,127,871

 
2,592,551

 
$
6,181,044

 
$
5,055,246

See accompanying notes




F-5



CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF CHANGES IN EQUITY
(Amounts in thousands)
 
Common
Stock
 
Additional Paid-In
Capital
 
Retained
Earnings
 
Treasury
Stock
 
Accum-
ulated
Other
Compre-
hensive Loss
 
Non-Controlling
Interest
 
Total
Equity
 
Shares
 
$
 
$
 
$
 
$
 
$
 
$
 
$
Balance, November 1, 2009
164,732

 
1,647

 
316,518

 
2,197,830

 
(159
)
 
(2,637
)
 
3,283

 
2,516,482

Net loss

 

 

 
(3,374
)
 

 

 

 
(3,374
)
Purchase of treasury stock
(31
)
 

 

 

 
(588
)
 

 

 
(588
)
Exercise of stock options
1,684

 
17

 
33,638

 

 
620

 

 

 
34,275

Employee benefit plan issuances
24

 

 
435

 

 

 

 

 
435

Conversion of restricted stock units to stock
3

 

 
61

 

 
31

 

 

 
92

Stock-based compensation

 

 
9,332

 

 

 

 

 
9,332

Issuance of restricted stock
1

 

 
22

 

 

 

 

 
22

Other comprehensive income

 

 

 

 

 
2,060

 

 
2,060

Capital contribution

 

 

 

 

 

 
277

 
277

Balance, October 31, 2010
166,413

 
1,664

 
360,006

 
2,194,456

 
(96
)
 
(577
)
 
3,560

 
2,559,013

Net income

 

 

 
39,795

 

 

 

 
39,795

Purchase of treasury stock

 

 
(1
)
 

 
(49,102
)
 

 

 
(49,103
)
Exercise of stock options
2,236

 
23

 
23,156

 

 
1,940

 

 

 
25,119

Employee benefit plan issuances
15

 

 
285

 

 
126

 

 

 
411

Conversion of restricted stock units to stock
10

 

 
208

 

 
67

 

 

 
275

Stock-based compensation

 

 
8,626

 

 

 

 

 
8,626

Issuance of restricted stock and stock units
1

 

 
8,102

 

 

 

 

 
8,102

Other comprehensive loss

 

 

 

 

 
(2,325
)
 

 
(2,325
)
Capital contribution

 

 

 

 

 

 
2,638

 
2,638

Balance, October 31, 2011
168,675

 
1,687

 
400,382

 
2,234,251

 
(47,065
)
 
(2,902
)
 
6,198

 
2,592,551

Net income

 

 

 
487,146

 

 

 

 
487,146

Purchase of treasury stock

 

 


 

 
(505
)
 

 

 
(505
)
Exercise of stock options
13

 


 
(9,831
)
 

 
44,472

 

 

 
34,641

Employee benefit plan issuances


 

 
174

 

 
301

 

 

 
475

Conversion of restricted stock units to stock


 

 
(1,814
)
 

 
1,814

 

 

 

Stock-based compensation

 

 
7,411

 

 

 

 

 
7,411

Issuance of restricted stock and stock units
2

 

 
8,096

 

 

 

 

 
8,096

Other comprehensive loss

 

 

 

 

 
(1,917
)
 

 
(1,917
)
Loss attributable to non-controlling interest

 

 

 

 

 

 
(27
)
 
(27
)
Balance, October 31, 2012
168,690

 
1,687

 
404,418

 
2,721,397

 
(983
)

(4,819
)
 
6,171

 
3,127,871

See accompanying notes


F-6



CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF CASH FLOWS
(Amounts in thousands)

 
Year ended October 31,
 
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Cash flow (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net income (loss)
 
$
487,146

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
Adjustments to reconcile net income (loss) to net cash (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
Depreciation and amortization
 
22,586

 
23,142

 
20,044

Stock-based compensation
 
15,575

 
12,494

 
11,677

(Recovery) impairment of investments in unconsolidated entities
 
(2,311
)
 
40,870

 

Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
 
(5,776
)
 

 
(4,954
)
Income from unconsolidated entities
 
(21,281
)
 
(39,676
)
 
(23,470
)
Distributions of earnings from unconsolidated entities
 
5,258

 
12,081

 
10,297

Income from non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate
 
(12,444
)
 
(5,113
)
 

Deferred tax benefit
 
41,810

 
(18,188
)
 
60,697

Deferred tax valuation allowances
 
(394,718
)
 
18,188

 
(60,697
)
Inventory impairments and write-offs
 
14,739

 
51,837

 
115,258

Change in fair value of mortgage loans receivable and derivative instruments
 
(670
)
 
475

 
(970
)
Gain on sale of marketable securities
 
(40
)
 


 


Expenses related to early retirement of debt
 


 
3,827

 
1,208

Changes in operating assets and liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
Increase in inventory
 
(195,948
)
 
(215,738
)
 
(140,344
)
Origination of mortgage loans
 
(651,618
)
 
(630,294
)
 
(628,154
)
Sale of mortgage loans
 
629,397

 
659,610

 
579,221

(Increase) decrease in restricted cash
 
(27,516
)
 
41,146

 
(60,906
)
Increase in receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
 
(33,922
)
 
(11,522
)
 
(3,115
)
Increase (decrease) in customer deposits
 
44,383

 
13,175

 
(15,182
)
Decrease in accounts payable and accrued expenses
 
(58,537
)
 
(28,624
)
 
(38,598
)
Decrease in income tax refund recoverable
 

 
141,590

 
20,250

(Decrease) increase in income taxes payable
 
(25,075
)
 
(56,225
)
 
14,828

Net cash (used in) provided by operating activities
 
(168,962
)
 
52,850

 
(146,284
)
Cash flow used in investing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
Purchase of property and equipment — net
 
(14,495
)
 
(9,553
)
 
(4,830
)
Purchase of marketable securities
 
(579,958
)
 
(452,864
)
 
(157,962
)
Sale and redemption of marketable securities
 
368,253

 
408,831

 
60,000

Investment in and advances to unconsolidated entities
 
(217,160
)
 
(132
)
 
(58,286
)
Return of investments in unconsolidated entities
 
38,368

 
43,309

 
9,696

Investment in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate
 
(30,090
)
 
(66,867
)
 

Return of investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate
 
16,707

 
2,806

 

Acquisition of a business
 
(144,746
)
 


 


Net cash used in investing activities
 
(563,121
)
 
(74,470
)
 
(151,382
)
Cash flow provided by (used in) financing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net proceeds from issuance of senior notes
 
578,696

 

 

Proceeds from loans payable
 
1,002,934

 
921,251

 
927,233

Principal payments of loans payable
 
(1,016,081
)
 
(952,621
)
 
(1,316,514
)
Redemption of senior subordinated notes
 

 

 
(47,872
)
Redemption of senior notes
 


 
(58,837
)
 
(46,114
)
Proceeds from stock-based benefit plans
 
33,747

 
25,531

 
7,589

Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
 
5,776

 

 
4,954

Purchase of treasury stock
 
(505
)
 
(49,102
)
 
(588
)
Change in noncontrolling interest
 


 
2,678

 
320

Net cash provided by (used in) financing activities
 
604,567

 
(111,100
)
 
(470,992
)
Net decrease in cash and cash equivalents
 
(127,516
)
 
(132,720
)
 
(768,658
)
Cash and cash equivalents, beginning of year
 
906,340

 
1,039,060

 
1,807,718

Cash and cash equivalents, end of year
 
$
778,824

 
$
906,340

 
$
1,039,060

See accompanying notes

F-7



Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements
1. Significant Accounting Policies
Basis of Presentation
The accompanying consolidated financial statements include the accounts of Toll Brothers, Inc. (the “Company”), a Delaware corporation, and its majority-owned subsidiaries. All significant intercompany accounts and transactions have been eliminated. Investments in 50% or less owned partnerships and affiliates are accounted for using the equity method unless it is determined that the Company has effective control of the entity, in which case the entity would be consolidated.
Use of Estimates
The preparation of financial statements in conformity with U.S. generally accepted accounting principles (“GAAP”) requires management to make estimates and assumptions that affect the amounts reported in the financial statements and accompanying notes. Actual results could differ from those estimates.
Cash and Cash Equivalents
Liquid investments or investments with original maturities of three months or less are classified as cash equivalents. The carrying value of these investments approximates their fair value.
Marketable Securities
Marketable securities are classified as available-for-sale, and accordingly, are stated at fair value, which is based on quoted market prices. Changes in unrealized gains and losses are excluded from earnings and are reported as other comprehensive income, net of income tax effects, if any.
Restricted Cash
Restricted cash primarily represents cash deposits collateralizing certain deductibles under insurance policies, outstanding letters of credit outside of our bank revolving credit facility and cash deposited into a voluntary employee benefit association to fund certain future employee benefits.
Inventory
Inventory is stated at cost unless an impairment exists, in which case it is written down to fair value in accordance with the Financial Accounting Standards Board (“FASB”) Accounting Standards Codification (“ASC”) 360, “Property, Plant and Equipment” (“ASC 360”). In addition to direct land acquisition costs, land development costs and home construction costs, costs also include interest, real estate taxes and direct overhead related to development and construction, which are capitalized to inventory during the period beginning with the commencement of development and ending with the completion of construction. For those communities that have been temporarily closed, no additional capitalized interest is allocated to a community’s inventory until it reopens. While the community remains closed, carrying costs such as real estate taxes are expensed as incurred.
The Company capitalizes certain interest costs to qualified inventory during the development and construction period of its communities in accordance with ASC 835-20, “Capitalization of Interest” (“ASC 835-20”). Capitalized interest is charged to cost of revenues when the related inventory is delivered. Interest incurred on home building indebtedness in excess of qualified inventory, as defined in ASC 835-20, is charged to the Consolidated Statement of Operations in the period incurred.
Once a parcel of land has been approved for development and the Company opens one of its typical communities, it may take four or more years to fully develop, sell and deliver all the homes in such community. Longer or shorter time periods are possible depending on the number of home sites in a community and the sales and delivery pace of the homes in a community. The Company’s master planned communities, consisting of several smaller communities, may take up to ten years or more to complete. Because the Company’s inventory is considered a long-lived asset under GAAP, the Company is required, under ASC 360, to regularly review the carrying value of each community and write down the value of those communities for which it believes the values are not recoverable.

F-8



Current Communities: When the profitability of a current community deteriorates, the sales pace declines significantly, or some other factor indicates a possible impairment in the recoverability of the asset, the asset is reviewed for impairment by comparing the estimated future undiscounted cash flow for the community to its carrying value. If the estimated future undiscounted cash flow is less than the community’s carrying value, the carrying value is written down to its estimated fair value. Estimated fair value is primarily determined by discounting the estimated future cash flow of each community. The impairment is charged to cost of revenues in the period in which the impairment is determined. In estimating the future undiscounted cash flow of a community, the Company uses various estimates such as: (i) the expected sales pace in a community, based upon general economic conditions that will have a short-term or long-term impact on the market in which the community is located and on competition within the market, including the number of home sites available and pricing and incentives being offered in other communities owned by the Company or by other builders; (ii) the expected sales prices and sales incentives to be offered in a community; (iii) costs expended to date and expected to be incurred in the future, including, but not limited to, land and land development, home construction, interest and overhead costs; (iv) alternative product offerings that may be offered in a community that will have an impact on sales pace, sales price, building cost or the number of homes that can be built on a particular site; and (v) alternative uses for the property such as the possibility of a sale of the entire community to another builder or the sale of individual home sites.
Future Communities: The Company evaluates all land held for future communities or future sections of current communities, whether owned or under contract, to determine whether or not it expects to proceed with the development of the land as originally contemplated. This evaluation encompasses the same types of estimates used for current communities described above, as well as an evaluation of the regulatory environment applicable to the land and the estimated probability of obtaining the necessary approvals, the estimated time and cost it will take to obtain the approvals and the possible concessions that will be required to be given in order to obtain them. Concessions may include cash payments to fund improvements to public places such as parks and streets, dedication of a portion of the property for use by the public or as open space or a reduction in the density or size of the homes to be built. Based upon this review, the Company decides (i) as to land under contract to be purchased, whether the contract will likely be terminated or renegotiated, and (ii) as to land owned, whether the land will likely be developed as contemplated or in an alternative manner, or should be sold. The Company then further determines whether costs that have been capitalized to the community are recoverable or should be written off. The write-off is charged to cost of revenues in the period in which the need for the write-off is determined.
The estimates used in the determination of the estimated cash flows and fair value of both current and future communities are based on factors known to the Company at the time such estimates are made and its expectations of future operations and economic conditions. Should the estimates or expectations used in determining estimated fair value deteriorate in the future, the Company may be required to recognize additional impairment charges and write-offs related to current and future communities.
Variable Interest Entities
The Company is required to consolidate variable interest entities ("VIEs") in which it has a controlling financial interest in accordance with ASC 810, “Consolidation” (“ASC 810”). A controlling financial interest will have both of the following characteristics: (i) the power to direct the activities of a VIE that most significantly impact the VIE’s economic performance and (ii) the obligation to absorb losses of the VIE that could potentially be significant to the VIE or the right to receive benefits from the VIE that could potentially be significant to the VIE.
The Company's variable interest in VIEs may be in the form of equity ownership, contracts to purchase assets, management services and development agreements between the Company and a VIE, loans provided by the Company to a VIE or other member and/or guarantees provided by members to banks and other third parties.
The Company has a significant number of land purchase contracts and several investments in unconsolidated entities which it evaluates in accordance with ASC 810. The Company analyzes its land purchase contracts and the unconsolidated entities in which it has an investment to determine whether the land sellers and unconsolidated entities are VIEs and, if so, whether the Company is the primary beneficiary. The Company examines specific criteria and uses its judgment when determining if it is the primary beneficiary of a VIE. Factors considered in determining whether the Company is the primary beneficiary include risk and reward sharing, experience and financial condition of other member(s), voting rights, involvement in day-to-day capital and operating decisions, representation on a VIE's executive committee, existence of unilateral kick-out rights or voting rights, level of economic disproportionality between the Company and the other member(s) and contracts to purchase assets from VIEs. The determination whether an entity is a VIE and, if so, whether the Company is primary beneficiary may require significant judgment.



F-9



Property, Construction and Office Equipment
Property, construction and office equipment are recorded at cost and are stated net of accumulated depreciation of $157.5 million and $153.3 million at October 31, 2012 and 2011, respectively. Depreciation is recorded using the straight-line method over the estimated useful lives of the assets. In fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, the Company recognized $8.1 million, $9.8 million and $14.1 million of depreciation expense, respectively.
Mortgage Loans Receivable
Residential mortgage loans held for sale are measured at fair value in accordance with the provisions of ASC 825, “Financial Instruments” (“ASC 825”). The Company believes the use of ASC 825 improves consistency of mortgage loan valuations between the date the borrower locks in the interest rate on the pending mortgage loan and the date of the mortgage loan sale. At the end of the reporting period, the Company determines the fair value of its mortgage loans held for sale and the forward loan commitments it has entered into as a hedge against the interest rate risk of its mortgage loans using the market approach to determine fair value. The evaluation is based on the current market pricing of mortgage loans with similar terms and values as of the reporting date and by applying such pricing to the mortgage loan portfolio. The Company recognizes the difference between the fair value and the unpaid principal balance of mortgage loans held for sale as a gain or loss. In addition, the Company recognizes the fair value of its forward loan commitments as a gain or loss. Interest income on mortgage loans held for sale is calculated based upon the stated interest rate of each loan. In addition, the recognition of net origination costs and fees associated with residential mortgage loans originated are expensed as incurred. These gains and losses, interest income and origination costs and fees are recognized in other income - net in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations.
Investments in and Advances to Unconsolidated Entities
The trends, uncertainties or other factors that have negatively impacted our business and the industry in general have also impacted the unconsolidated entities in which the Company has investments. In accordance with ASC 323, “Investments—Equity Method and Joint Ventures”, the Company reviews each of its investments on a quarterly basis for indicators of impairment. A series of operating losses of an investee, the inability to recover the Company’s invested capital, or other factors may indicate that a loss in value of the Company’s investment in the unconsolidated entity has occurred. If a loss exists, the Company further reviews to determine if the loss is other than temporary, in which case, it writes down the investment to its fair value. The evaluation of the Company’s investment in unconsolidated entities entails a detailed cash flow analysis using many estimates including but not limited to expected sales pace, expected sales prices, expected incentives, costs incurred and anticipated, sufficiency of financing and capital, competition, market conditions and anticipated cash receipts, in order to determine projected future distributions.
Each of the unconsolidated entities evaluates its inventory in a similar manner as the Company. See “Inventory” above for more detailed disclosure on the Company’s evaluation of inventory. If a valuation adjustment is recorded by an unconsolidated entity related to its assets, the Company’s proportionate share is reflected in the Company’s income (loss) from unconsolidated entities with a corresponding decrease to its investment in unconsolidated entities.
The Company is a party to several joint ventures with independent third parties to develop and sell land that is owned by its joint venture partners. The Company recognizes its proportionate share of the earnings from the sale of home sites to other builders. The Company does not recognize earnings from the home sites it purchases from these ventures, but reduces its cost basis in the home sites by its share of the earnings from those home sites.
The Company is also a party to several other joint ventures. The Company recognizes its proportionate share of the earnings and losses of its unconsolidated entities.
Investments in Non-performing Loan Portfolios and Foreclosed Real Estate
The Company’s investments in non-performing loan portfolios were initially recorded at cost which the Company believes was fair value. The fair value was determined by discounting the cash flows expected to be collected from the portfolios using a discount rate that management believes a market participant would use in determining fair value. Management estimated cash flows expected to be collected on a loan-by-loan basis considering the contractual terms of the loan, current and expected loan performance, the manner and timing of disposition, the nature and estimated fair value of real estate or other collateral, and other factors it deemed appropriate. The estimated fair value of the loans at acquisition was significantly less than the contractual amounts due under the terms of the loan agreements.
Since, at the acquisition date, the Company expected to collect less than the contractual amounts due under the terms of the loans based, at least in part, on the assessment of the credit quality of the borrowers, the loans are accounted for in accordance

F-10



with ASC Topic 310-30, “Loans and Debt Securities Acquired with Deteriorated Credit Quality” (ASC 310-30). Under ASC 310-30, the accretable yield, or the amount by which the cash flows expected to be collected at the acquisition date exceeds the estimated fair value of the loan, is recognized in other income - net over the estimated remaining life of the loan using a level yield methodology provided the Company does not presently have the intention to utilize real estate secured by the loans for use in its operations or significantly improving the collateral for resale. The difference between the contractually required payments of the loan as of the acquisition date and the total cash flows expected to be collected, or non-accretable difference, is not recognized.
Pursuant to ASC 310-30, the Company aggregated loans with common risk characteristics into pools for purposes of recognizing interest income and evaluating changes in estimated cash flows. Loan pools are evaluated as a single loan for purposes of placing the pool on non-accrual status or evaluating loan impairment. Generally, a loan pool is classified as non-accrual when management is unable to reasonably estimate the timing or amount of cash flows expected to be collected from the loan pool or has serious doubts about further collectability of principal or interest. Proceeds received on non-accrual loan pools generally are either applied against principal or reported as other income - net, depending on management’s judgment as to the collectability of principal. For the year ended October 31, 2012, none of the Company’s loan pools were on non-accrual status.
A loan is removed from a loan pool only when the Company sells, forecloses or otherwise receives assets in satisfaction of the loan, or the loan is written off. Loans removed from a pool are removed at their amortized cost (unpaid principal balance less unamortized discount and provision for loan loss) as of the date of resolution.
The Company periodically re-evaluates cash flows expected to be collected for each loan pool based upon all available information as of the measurement date. Subsequent increases in cash flows expected to be collected are recognized prospectively through an adjustment to the loan pool’s yield over its remaining life, which may result in a reclassification from non-accretable difference to accretable yield. Subsequent decreases in cash flows expected to be collected are evaluated to determine whether a provision for loan loss should be established. If decreases in expected cash flows result in a decrease in the estimated fair value of the loan pool below its amortized cost, the loan pool is deemed to be impaired and the Company will record a provision for loan losses to write the loan pool down to its estimated fair value. For the year ended October 31, 2012, the Company recorded a provision for loan losses of $2.3 million. There were no loan losses recorded during the year ended October 31, 2011.
The Company’s investments in non-performing loans are classified as held for investment because the Company has the intent and ability to hold them for the foreseeable future.
Real Estate Owned ("REO")
REO assets, either directly owned or owned through a participation arrangement, acquired through subsequent foreclosure or deed in lieu actions on non-performing loans are initially recorded at fair value based upon third-party appraisals, broker opinions of value, or internal valuation methodologies (which may include discounted cash flows, capitalization rate analysis or comparable transactional analysis). Unobservable inputs used in estimating the fair value of REO assets are based upon the best information available under the circumstances and take into consideration the financial condition and operating results of the asset, local market conditions, the availability of capital, interest and inflation rates and other factors deemed appropriate by management. REO assets acquired are reviewed to determine if they should be classified as “held and used” or “held for sale”. REO classified as “held and used” is stated at carrying cost unless an impairment exists, in which case it is written down to fair value in accordance with ASC 360-10-35. REO classified as “held for sale” is carried at the lower of carrying amount or fair value less cost to sell. An impairment charge is recognized for any decreases in estimated fair value subsequent to the acquisition date. For both classifications, carrying costs incurred after the acquisition, including property taxes and insurance, are expensed.
Loan Sales
As part of its disposition strategy for the loan portfolios, the Company may sell certain loans to third-party purchasers. The Company recognizes gains or losses on the sale of mortgage loans when the loans have been legally isolated from the Company and it no longer maintains effective control over the transferred assets.
Fair Value Disclosures
The Company uses ASC 820, “Fair Value Measurements and Disclosures” (“ASC 820”), to measure the fair value of certain assets and liabilities. ASC 820 provides a framework for measuring fair value in accordance with GAAP, establishes a fair value hierarchy which requires an entity to maximize the use of observable inputs and minimize the use of unobservable inputs

F-11



when measuring fair value and requires certain disclosures about fair value measurements.
In January 2010, the FASB issued Accounting Standards Update ("ASU") No. 2010-06, “Improving Disclosure about Fair Value Measurements” (“ASU 2010-06”), which amended ASC 820 to increase disclosure requirements regarding recurring and non-recurring fair value measurements. The Company adopted ASU 2010-06 as of February 1, 2010, except for the disclosures about Level 3 fair value disclosures which were effective for the Company on November 1, 2011. The adoption of ASU 2010-06 did not have a material impact on the Company’s consolidated financial position, results of operations or cash flows.
The fair value hierarchy is summarized below:
Level 1:
 
Fair value determined based on quoted prices in active markets for identical assets or liabilities.
Level 2:
 
Fair value determined using significant observable inputs, generally either quoted prices in active markets for similar assets or liabilities or quoted prices in markets that are not active.
Level 3:
 
Fair value determined using significant unobservable inputs, such as pricing models, discounted cash flows or similar techniques.
Treasury Stock
Treasury stock is recorded at cost. Issuance of treasury stock is accounted for on a first-in, first-out basis. Differences between the cost of treasury stock and the re-issuance proceeds are charged to additional paid-in capital.
Revenue and Cost Recognition
The construction time of the Company’s homes is generally less than one year, although some homes may take more than one year to complete. Revenues and cost of revenues from these home sales are recorded at the time each home is delivered and title and possession are transferred to the buyer. For single family detached homes, closing normally occurs shortly after construction is substantially completed. In addition, the Company has several high-rise/mid-rise projects that do not qualify for percentage of completion accounting in accordance with ASC 360, which are included in this category of revenues and costs. Based upon the current accounting rules and interpretations, the Company does not believe that any of its current or future communities currently qualify or will qualify in the future for percentage of completion accounting.
For the Company’s standard attached and detached homes, land, land development and related costs, both incurred and estimated to be incurred in the future, are amortized to the cost of homes closed based upon the total number of homes to be constructed in each community. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated number of homes to be constructed or in the estimated costs subsequent to the commencement of delivery of homes are allocated to the remaining undelivered homes in the community. Home construction and related costs are charged to the cost of homes closed under the specific identification method. The estimated land, common area development and related costs of master planned communities, including the cost of golf courses, net of their estimated residual value, are allocated to individual communities within a master planned community on a relative sales value basis. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated number of homes to be constructed or in the estimated costs are allocated to the remaining home sites in each of the communities of the master planned community.
For high-rise/mid-rise projects that do not qualify for percentage of completion accounting, land, land development, construction and related costs, both incurred and estimated to be incurred in the future, are generally amortized to the cost of units closed based upon an estimated relative sales value of the units closed to the total estimated sales value. Any changes resulting from a change in the estimated total costs or revenues of the project are allocated to the remaining units to be delivered.
Forfeited customer deposits: Forfeited customer deposits are recognized in other income - net in the period in which the Company determines that the customer will not complete the purchase of the home and it has the right to retain the deposit.
Sales Incentives: In order to promote sales of its homes, the Company grants its home buyers sales incentives from time to time. These incentives will vary by type of incentive and by amount on a community-by-community and home-by-home basis. Incentives that impact the value of the home or the sales price paid, such as special or additional options, are generally reflected as a reduction in sales revenues. Incentives that the Company pays to an outside party, such as paying some or all of a home buyer’s closing costs, are recorded as an additional cost of revenues. Incentives are recognized at the time the home is delivered to the home buyer and the Company receives the sales proceeds.


F-12



Advertising Costs
The Company expenses advertising costs as incurred. Advertising costs were $11.4 million, $11.1 million and $9.2 million for the years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, respectively.
Warranty Costs
The Company provides all of its home buyers with a limited warranty as to workmanship and mechanical equipment. The Company also provides many of its home buyers with a limited ten-year warranty as to structural integrity. The Company accrues for expected warranty costs at the time each home is closed and title and possession have been transferred to the buyer. Costs are accrued based upon historical experience.
Insurance Costs
The Company accrues for the expected costs associated with the deductibles and self-insured amounts under its various insurance policies.
Stock-Based Compensation
The Company accounts for its stock-based compensation in accordance with ASC 718, “Compensation — Stock Compensation” (“ASC 718”). The Company used a lattice model for the valuation for its stock option grants. The option pricing models used are designed to estimate the value of options that, unlike employee stock options and restricted stock units, can be traded at any time and are transferable. In addition to restrictions on trading, employee stock options and restricted stock units may include other restrictions such as vesting periods. Further, such models require the input of highly subjective assumptions, including the expected volatility of the stock price.
Income Taxes
The Company accounts for income taxes in accordance with ASC 740, “Income Taxes” (“ASC 740”). Deferred tax assets and liabilities are recorded based on temporary differences between the amounts reported for financial reporting purposes and the amounts reported for income tax purposes. In accordance with the provisions of ASC 740, the Company assesses the realizability of its deferred tax assets. A valuation allowance must be established when, based upon available evidence, it is more likely than not that all or a portion of the deferred tax assets will not be realized. See “Income Taxes — Valuation Allowance” below.
Federal and state income taxes are calculated on reported pre-tax earnings (losses) based on current tax law and also include, in the applicable period, the cumulative effect of any changes in tax rates from those used previously in determining deferred tax assets and liabilities. Such provisions (benefits) differ from the amounts currently receivable or payable because certain items of income and expense are recognized for financial reporting purposes in different periods than for income tax purposes. Significant judgment is required in determining income tax provisions (benefits) and evaluating tax positions. The Company establishes reserves for income taxes when, despite the belief that its tax positions are fully supportable, it believes that its positions may be challenged and disallowed by various tax authorities. The consolidated tax provisions (benefits) and related accruals include the impact of such reasonably estimable disallowances as deemed appropriate. To the extent that the probable tax outcome of these matters changes, such changes in estimates will impact the income tax provision (benefit) in the period in which such determination is made.
ASC 740 clarifies the accounting for uncertainty in income taxes recognized and prescribes a recognition threshold and measurement attributes for the financial statement recognition and measurement of a tax position taken or expected to be taken in a tax return. ASC 740 also provides guidance on de-recognition, classification, interest and penalties, accounting in interim periods, disclosure and transition. ASC 740 requires a company to recognize the financial statement effect of a tax position when it is “more-likely-than-not” (defined as a substantiated likelihood of more than 50%), based on the technical merits of the position, that the position will be sustained upon examination. A tax position that meets the “more-likely-than-not” recognition threshold is measured to determine the amount of benefit to be recognized in the financial statements based upon the largest amount of benefit that is greater than 50% likely of being realized upon ultimate settlement with a taxing authority that has full knowledge of all relevant information. The inability of the Company to determine that a tax position meets the “more-likely-than-not” recognition threshold does not mean that the Internal Revenue Service (“IRS”) or any other taxing authority will disagree with the position that the Company has taken.
If a tax position does not meet the “more-likely-than-not” recognition threshold, despite the Company’s belief that its filing position is supportable, the benefit of that tax position is not recognized in the Consolidated Statements of Operations and the Company is required to accrue potential interest and penalties until the uncertainty is resolved. Potential interest and penalties

F-13



are recognized as a component of the provision for income taxes which is consistent with the Company’s historical accounting policy. Differences between amounts taken in a tax return and amounts recognized in the financial statements are considered unrecognized tax benefits. The Company believes that it has a reasonable basis for each of its filing positions and intends to defend those positions if challenged by the IRS or other taxing jurisdiction. If the IRS or other taxing authorities do not disagree with the Company’s position, and after the statute of limitations expires, the Company will recognize the unrecognized tax benefit in the period that the uncertainty of the tax position is eliminated.
Income Taxes — Valuation Allowance

Significant judgment is applied in assessing the realizability of deferred tax assets. In accordance with GAAP, a valuation allowance is established against a deferred tax asset if, based on the available evidence, it is more-likely-than-not that such asset will not be realized. The realization of a deferred tax asset ultimately depends on the existence of sufficient taxable income in either the carryback or carryforward periods under tax law. The Company assesses the need for valuation allowances for deferred tax assets based on GAAP's “more-likely-than-not” realization threshold criteria. In the Company's assessment, appropriate consideration is given to all positive and negative evidence related to the realization of the deferred tax assets. Forming a conclusion that a valuation allowance is not needed is difficult when there is negative evidence such as cumulative losses in recent years. This assessment considers, among other matters, the nature, consistency and magnitude of current and cumulative income and losses, forecasts of future profitability, the duration of statutory carryback or carryforward periods, the Company's experience with operating loss and tax credit carryforwards being used before expiration, and tax planning alternatives.

The Company's assessment of the need for a valuation allowance on its deferred tax assets includes assessing the likely future tax consequences of events that have been recognized in its consolidated financial statements or tax returns. Changes in existing tax laws or rates could affect the Company's actual tax results and its future business results may affect the amount of its deferred tax liabilities or the valuation of its deferred tax assets over time. The Company's accounting for deferred tax assets represents its best estimate of future events.

Due to uncertainties in the estimation process, particularly with respect to changes in facts and circumstances in future reporting periods (carryforward period assumptions), actual results could differ from the estimates used in the Company's analysis. The Company's assumptions require significant judgment because the residential home building industry is cyclical and is highly sensitive to changes in economic conditions. If the Company's results of operations are less than projected and there is insufficient objectively verifiable positive evidence to support the “more-likely-than-not” realization of its deferred tax assets, a valuation allowance would be required to reduce or eliminate its deferred tax assets.
Noncontrolling Interest
The Company has a 67% interest in an entity that is developing land. The financial statements of this entity are consolidated in the Company’s consolidated financial statements. The amounts shown in the Company’s Consolidated Balance Sheets under “Noncontrolling interest” represent the noncontrolling interest attributable to the 33% minority interest not owned by the Company.
Geographic Segment Reporting
The Company has determined that its home building operations operate in four geographic segments: North, Mid-Atlantic, South and West. The states comprising each geographic segment are as follows:
North:        Connecticut, Illinois, Massachusetts, Michigan, Minnesota, New Jersey and New York
Mid-Atlantic:    Delaware, Maryland, Pennsylvania and Virginia
South:        Florida, North Carolina and Texas
West:        Arizona, California, Colorado, Nevada and Washington
In fiscal 2011, the Company discontinued the sale of homes in South Carolina. In fiscal 2010, the Company discontinued the sale of homes in West Virginia and Georgia. The operations in South Carolina, West Virginia and Georgia were immaterial to the South and Mid-Atlantic geographic segments.

F-14



Related Party Transactions
See Note 4 “Investments and Advances to Unconsolidated Entities” for information regarding Toll Brothers Realty Trust.
Recent Accounting Pronouncements
In June 2011, the FASB issued ASU No. 2011-05, “Statement of Comprehensive Income” (“ASU 2011-05”), which requires entities to present net income and other comprehensive income in either a single continuous statement or in two separate, but consecutive, statements of net income and other comprehensive income. The adoption of this guidance, which relates to presentation only, is not expected to have a material impact on the Company’s consolidated financial position, results of operations or cash flows. ASU 2011-05 will be effective for the Company’s fiscal year beginning November 1, 2012.
Reclassification
Certain prior period amounts have been reclassified to conform to the fiscal 2012 presentation.
2. Acquisition
In November 2011, the Company acquired substantially all of the assets of CamWest Development LLC (“CamWest”) for approximately $144.7 million in cash. The assets acquired were primarily inventory. As part of the acquisition, the Company assumed contracts to deliver approximately 29 homes with an aggregate value of $13.7 million. The average price of the homes in backlog at the date of acquisition was approximately $471,000. The assets the Company acquired included approximately 1,245 home sites owned and 254 home sites controlled through land purchase agreements. The Company’s selling community count increased by 15 communities at the acquisition date. The acquisition of the assets of CamWest was not material to the Company’s results of operations or its financial condition. In fiscal 2012, the Company delivered 201 homes and generated revenues of $99.7 million through its CamWest operations.
3. Inventory
Inventory at October 31, 2012 and 2011 consisted of the following (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
Land controlled for future communities
$
56,300

 
$
46,581

Land owned for future communities
1,040,373

 
979,145

Operating communities
2,664,514

 
2,390,997

 
$
3,761,187

 
$
3,416,723

Operating communities include communities offering homes for sale, communities that have sold all available home sites but have not completed delivery of the homes, communities that were previously offering homes for sale but are temporarily closed due to business conditions or non-availability of improved home sites and that are expected to reopen within twelve months of the end of the fiscal year being reported on and communities preparing to open for sale. The carrying value attributable to operating communities includes the cost of homes under construction, land and land development costs, the carrying cost of home sites in current and future phases of these communities and the carrying cost of model homes.
Communities that were previously offering homes for sale but are temporarily closed due to business conditions that do not have any remaining backlog and are not expected to reopen within twelve months of the end of the fiscal period being reported on have been classified as land owned for future communities.
Information regarding the classification, number and carrying value of these temporarily closed communities at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 is provided in the table below ($ amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Land owned for future communities:
 
 
 
 
 
Number of communities
40

 
43

 
36

Carrying value (in thousands)
$
240,307

 
$
256,468

 
$
212,882

Operating communities:
 
 
 
 
 
Number of communities
5

 
2

 
13

Carrying value (in thousands)
$
34,685

 
$
11,076

 
$
78,100


F-15



The Company provided for inventory impairment charges and the expensing of costs that it believed not to be recoverable in each of the three fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 as shown in the table below (amounts in thousands).
Charge:
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Land controlled for future communities
$
451

 
$
17,752

 
$
6,069

Land owned for future communities
1,218

 
17,000

 
55,700

Operating communities
13,070

 
17,085

 
53,489

 
$
14,739

 
$
51,837

 
$
115,258

For information related to the number of operating communities that the Company reviewed for potential impairment, the number of operating communities in which the Company recognized impairment charges, the amount of impairment charges recognized and the fair value of the communities for which an impairment charge was recorded, net of the charge, see Note 12, "Fair Value Disclosures".
At October 31, 2012, the Company evaluated its land purchase contracts to determine if any of the selling entities were VIEs and, if they were, whether the Company was the primary beneficiary of any of them. Under these land purchase contracts, the Company does not possess legal title to the land and its risk is generally limited to deposits paid to the sellers and the creditors of the sellers generally have no recourse against the Company. At October 31, 2012, the Company determined that 64 land purchase contracts, with an aggregate purchase price of $540.8 million, on which it had made aggregate deposits totaling $25.5 million, were VIEs and that it was not the primary beneficiary of any VIE related to its land purchase contracts.
Interest incurred, capitalized and expensed in each of the three fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 was as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Interest capitalized, beginning of year
$
298,757

 
$
267,278

 
$
259,818

Interest incurred
125,783

 
114,761

 
114,975

Interest expensed to cost of revenues
(87,117
)
 
(77,623
)
 
(75,876
)
Interest directly expensed in the consolidated statements of operations

 
(1,504
)
 
(22,751
)
Write-off against other income
(3,404
)
 
(1,155
)
 
(8,369
)
Interest reclassified to property, construction and office equipment


 
(3,000
)
 
(519
)
Capitalized interest applicable to investments in unconsolidated entities
(3,438
)
 

 


Interest capitalized, end of year
$
330,581

 
$
298,757

 
$
267,278

Inventory impairment charges are recognized against all inventory costs of a community, such as land, land improvements, cost of home construction and capitalized interest. The amounts included in the table directly above reflect the gross amount of capitalized interest without allocation of any impairment charges recognized. The Company estimates that, had inventory impairment charges been allocated on a pro rata basis to the individual components of inventory, capitalized interest at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 would have been reduced by approximately $47.9 million, $54.0 million and $53.3 million, respectively.
During fiscal 2011, the Company reclassified $20.0 million of inventory related to commercial retail space located in one of its high-rise projects to property, construction and office equipment. The $20.0 million was reclassified due to the completion of construction of the facilities and the substantial completion of the high-rise project of which the facilities are a part.
4. Investments in and Advances to Unconsolidated Entities
The Company has investments in and advances to various unconsolidated entities. At October 31, 2012, the Company's aggregate investments in and advances to these unconsolidated entities amounted to $330.6 million, it had $97.0 million of funding commitments to them and had guaranteed $9.8 million of payments related to these entities.
Development Joint Ventures
The Company has investments in and advances to a number of joint ventures with unrelated parties to develop land (“Development Joint Ventures”). Some of these Development Joint Ventures develop land for the sole use of the venture participants, including the Company, and others develop land for sale to the joint venture participants and to unrelated builders. The Company recognizes its share of earnings from the sale of home sites by the Development Joint Ventures to other builders.

F-16



With regard to home sites the Company purchases from the Development Joint Ventures, the Company reduces its cost basis in those home sites by its share of the earnings on the home sites. At October 31, 2012, the Company had approximately $116.5 million invested in or advanced to the Development Joint Ventures. In addition, the Company has a funding commitment of $3.5 million to one Development Joint Venture should an additional investment in that venture be required.
As of October 31, 2012, the Company had recognized cumulative impairment charges in connection with its current Development Joint Ventures of $95.2 million. These impairment charges are attributable to investments in certain Development Joint Ventures where the Company determined there were losses in value in the investments that were other than temporary. In fiscal 2011, the Company recognized impairment charges in connection with its Development Joint Ventures of $25.7 million. The Company did not recognize any impairment charges in connection with the Development Joint Ventures in fiscal 2012 or 2010. In fiscal 2012, the Company recovered $2.3 million of costs it previously incurred.
The impairment and recoveries related to Development Joint Ventures were attributable to the Company’s investment in South Edge LLC, and its successor entity, Inspirada Builders, LLC (collectively, "Inspirada"). The Company believes it has made adequate provision at October 31, 2012 for any remaining liabilities with respect to Inspirada. The Company’s investment in Inspirada is carried at a nominal value.
In the third quarter of fiscal 2012, the Company acquired a 50% interest in an existing joint venture for approximately $110.0 million. The joint venture intends to develop over 2,000 home sites in Orange County, California on land that it owns. The joint venture expects to borrow additional funds to complete the development of this project. In November 2012, we entered into an Amended and Restated Operating Agreement with our partner in this joint venture which, among other things, provided for our purchase of approximately 800 lots in the project, and the commitment by each partner to contribute an additional $10.0 million to the joint venture, if needed.
Planned Community Joint Venture
The Company is a participant in a joint venture with an unrelated party to develop a single master planned community (the “Planned Community Joint Venture”). At October 31, 2012, the Company had an investment of $31.3 million in this Planned Community Joint Venture. At October 31, 2012, each participant had agreed to contribute additional funds up to $8.3 million, if required. At October 31, 2012, this joint venture did not have any indebtedness. The Company recognized impairment charges in connection with the Planned Community Joint Venture of $15.2 million in fiscal 2011. The Company did not recognize any impairment charges in connection with the Planned Community Joint Venture in fiscal 2012 or fiscal 2010.
Other Joint Ventures
At October 31, 2012, the Company had an aggregate of $142.2 million of investments in a number of joint ventures with unrelated parties to develop luxury for-sale and rental residential units, commercial space and a hotel (“Other Joint Ventures”). At October 31, 2011, the Company had commitments to make $85.2 million of additional contributions to these joint ventures and had also guaranteed approximately $9.8 million of payments related to these joint ventures.
As of October 31, 2012, the Company had recognized cumulative impairment charges against its investments in these joint ventures and its pro rata share of impairment charges recognized by these joint ventures in the amount of $63.9 million. The Company did not recognize any impairment charges in connection with these joint ventures in fiscal 2012, 2011 or 2010.
In December 2011, the Company entered into a joint venture in which it has a 50% interest to develop a high-rise luxury for-sale/rental project in the metro-New York market. At October 31, 2012, the Company had an investment of $87.3 million and was committed to make additional investments of $37.5 million in this joint venture. Under the terms of the agreement, upon completion of the construction of the building, the Company will acquire ownership of the top 18 floors of the building to sell, for its own account, luxury condominium units and its partner will receive ownership of the lower floors containing residential rental units and retail space.
In the third quarter of fiscal 2012, the Company invested in a joint venture in which it has a 50% interest that will develop a high-rise luxury condominium/hotel project in the metro-New York market. At October 31, 2012, the Company had invested $5.4 million in this joint venture. The Company expects to make additional investments of approximately $47.7 million for the development of this property. The joint venture expects to borrow additional funds to complete the construction of this project. The Company has also guaranteed approximately $9.8 million of payments related to the ground lease on this project.
In the fourth quarter of fiscal 2012, the Company invested in a joint venture in which it has a 50% interest that will develop a multi-family residential apartment project containing approximately 398 units. At October 31, 2012, the Company had an

F-17



investment of $15.4 million in this joint venture. The joint venture expects to borrow funds to complete the construction of this project. The Company does not have any additional commitment to fund this joint venture.
Structured Asset Joint Venture
In July 2010, the Company, through Gibraltar, invested in a joint venture in which it is a 20% participant with two unrelated parties to purchase a 40% interest in an entity that owns and controls a portfolio of loans and real estate (“Structured Asset Joint Venture”). At October 31, 2012, the Company had an investment of $37.3 million in this Structured Asset Joint Venture. At October 31, 2012, the Company did not have any commitments to make additional contributions to the joint venture and has not guaranteed any of the joint venture’s liabilities. If the joint venture needs additional capital and a participant fails to make a requested capital contribution, the other participants may make a contribution in consideration for a preferred return or may make the additional capital contribution and diminish the non-contributing participant’s ownership interest.
Toll Brothers Realty Trust and Trust II
In fiscal 2005, the Company, together with the Pennsylvania State Employees Retirement System (“PASERS”), formed Toll Brothers Realty Trust II (“Trust II”) to be in a position to invest in commercial real estate opportunities. Trust II is owned 50% by the Company and 50% by an affiliate of PASERS. At October 31, 2012, the Company had an investment of $3.2 million in Trust II. Prior to the formation of Trust II, the Company formed Toll Brothers Realty Trust (“Trust”) in 1998 to invest in commercial real estate opportunities. The Trust is effectively owned one-third by the Company; one-third by Robert I. Toll, Bruce E. Toll (and members of his family), Douglas C. Yearley, Jr. and former members of the Company’s senior management; and one-third by an affiliate of PASERS (collectively, the “Shareholders”). As of October 31, 2012, the Company had a net investment in the Trust of $0.1 million. The Company provides development, finance and management services to the Trust and recognized fees under the terms of various agreements in the amounts of $2.7 million, $2.9 million and $3.1 million in fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, respectively.
General
At October 31, 2012, the Company had accrued $2.1 million of aggregate exposure with respect to its estimated obligations to unconsolidated entities in which it has an investment. The Company’s investments in these entities are accounted for using the equity method. The Company recognized $40.9 million of impairment charges related to its investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2011. The Company did not recognize any impairment charges related to its investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities in fiscal 2012 or 2010. In fiscal 2012, the Company recovered $2.3 million of costs it previously incurred. Impairment charges and recoveries related to these entities are included in “Income (loss) from unconsolidated entities” in the Company’s Consolidated Statements of Operations.
At October 31, 2012, the Company determined that two of its joint ventures were VIEs under the guidance within ASC810. However, the Company concluded that it was not the primary beneficiary of the VIEs because the power to direct the activities of these VIEs that most significantly impact their performance was shared by the Company and VIEs' other members. Business plans, budgets and other major decisions are required to be unanimously approved by all members. Management and other fees earned by the Company are nominal and believed to be at market rates and there is no significant economic disproportionality between the Company and other members.
The condensed balance sheets, as of the dates indicated, and the condensed statements of operations, for the periods indicated, for the Company’s unconsolidated entities in which it has an investment, aggregated by type of business, are included below (in thousands). The column titled "Home Building Joint Ventures" includes the Planned Community and Other Joint Ventures described above.

F-18



Condensed Balance Sheets:
 
October 31, 2012
 
Develop-
ment joint
ventures
 
Home
building
joint
ventures
 
Toll
Brothers
Realty Trust
I and II
 
Structured
asset
joint
venture
 
Total
Cash and cash equivalents
17,189

 
40,126

 
11,005

 
44,176

 
112,496

Inventory
255,561

 
294,724

 
5,643

 

 
555,928

Non-performing loan portfolio

 

 

 
226,315

 
226,315

Rental properties

 

 
173,767

 

 
173,767

Real estate owned

 

 


 
254,250

 
254,250

Other assets (1)
12,427

 
72,301

 
9,182

 
237,476

 
331,386

Total assets
285,177

 
407,151

 
199,597

 
762,217

 
1,654,142

Debt (1)
96,862

 
34,184

 
195,359

 
311,801

 
638,206

Other liabilities
13,890

 
5,707

 
5,202

 
561

 
25,360

Members’ equity
174,425

 
367,260

 
(964
)
 
179,942

 
720,663

Noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
269,913

 
269,913

Total liabilities and equity
285,177

 
407,151

 
199,597

 
762,217

 
1,654,142

Company’s net investment in unconsolidated entities (2)
116,452

 
173,465

 
3,357

 
37,343

 
330,617

 
October 31, 2011
 
Develop-
ment joint
ventures
 
Home
building
joint
ventures
 
Toll
Brothers
Realty Trust
I and II
 
Structured
asset
joint
venture
 
Total
Cash and cash equivalents
14,190

 
10,663

 
11,726

 
48,780

 
85,359

Inventory
37,340

 
170,239

 
5,501

 

 
213,080

Non-performing loan portfolio

 

 

 
295,044

 
295,044

Rental properties

 

 
178,339

 

 
178,339

Real estate owned

 

 
1,087

 
230,872

 
231,959

Other assets (1)
331,315

 
20,080

 
9,675

 
159,143

 
520,213

Total assets
382,845

 
200,982

 
206,328

 
733,839

 
1,523,994

Debt (1)
327,856

 
50,515

 
198,927

 
310,847

 
888,145

Other liabilities
5,352

 
9,745

 
3,427

 
382

 
18,906

Members’ equity
49,637

 
140,722

 
3,974

 
172,944

 
367,277

Noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
249,666

 
249,666

Total liabilities and equity
382,845

 
200,982

 
206,328

 
733,839

 
1,523,994

Company’s net investment in unconsolidated entities (2)
17,098

 
72,734

 
1,872

 
34,651

 
126,355

(1)
Included in other assets at October 31, 2012 and 2011 of the Structured Asset Joint Venture is $237.5 million and $152.6 million, respectively, of restricted cash held in a defeasance account which will be used to repay debt of the Structured Asset Joint Venture.
(2)
Differences between the Company’s net investment in unconsolidated entities and its underlying equity in the net assets of the entities are primarily a result of the difference in the purchase price of a joint venture interest and its underlying equity, impairments related to the Company’s investments in unconsolidated entities, a loan made to one of the entities by the Company, interest capitalized on the Company's investment and distributions from entities in excess of the carrying amount of the Company’s net investment.

F-19



Condensed Statements of Operations:
 
For the year ended October 31, 2012
 
Develop-
ment joint
ventures
 
Home
building
joint
ventures
 
Toll
Brothers
Realty Trust
I and II
 
Structured
asset
joint
venture
 
Total
Revenues
39,278

 
89,947

 
37,035

 
31,686

 
197,946

Cost of revenues
36,315

 
65,068

 
13,985

 
32,828

 
148,196

Other expenses
1,414

 
4,116

 
20,587

 
8,646

 
34,763

Gain on disposition of loans and REO


 

 

 
(42,244
)
 
(42,244
)
Total expenses
37,729

 
69,184

 
34,572

 
(770
)
 
140,715

Income from operations
1,549

 
20,763

 
2,463

 
32,456

 
57,231

Other income
2,658

 
157

 


 
691

 
3,506

Net income before noncontrolling interest
4,207

 
20,920

 
2,463

 
33,147

 
60,737

Less: Net income attributable to noncontrolling interest


 


 


 
19,888

 
19,888

Net income
4,207

 
20,920

 
2,463

 
13,259

 
40,849

Company’s equity in earnings of unconsolidated entities (3)
3,996

 
14,985

 
1,919

 
2,692

 
23,592

 
For the year ended October 31, 2011
 
Develop-
ment joint
ventures
 
Home
building
joint
ventures
 
Toll
Brothers
Realty Trust
I and II
 
Structured
asset
joint
venture
 
Total
Revenues
4,624

 
242,326

 
37,728

 
46,187

 
330,865

Cost of revenues
3,996

 
191,922

 
15,365

 
30,477

 
241,760

Other expenses
1,527

 
8,954

 
18,808

 
10,624

 
39,913

Gain on disposition of loans and REO


 

 

 
(61,406
)
 
(61,406
)
Total expenses
5,523

 
200,876

 
34,173

 
(20,305
)
 
220,267

Income (loss) from operations
(899
)
 
41,450

 
3,555

 
66,492

 
110,598

Other income
9,498

 
1,605

 


 
252

 
11,355

Net income before noncontrolling interest
8,599

 
43,055

 
3,555

 
66,744

 
121,953

Less: Net income attributable to noncontrolling interest


 


 


 
40,048

 
40,048

Net income
8,599

 
43,055

 
3,555

 
26,696

 
81,905

Company’s equity in (loss) earnings of unconsolidated entities (3)
(25,272
)
 
15,159

 
3,580

 
5,339

 
(1,194
)

F-20



 
For the year ended October 31, 2010
 
Development joint ventures
 
Home building joint ventures
 
Toll Brothers Realty Trust I and II
 
Structured asset
joint
venture
 
Total
Revenues
7,370

 
132,878

 
34,755

 
16,582

 
191,585

Cost of revenues
6,402

 
106,638

 
13,375

 
6,693

 
133,108

Other expenses
1,522

 
8,121

 
18,693

 
2,977

 
31,313

Loss on disposition of loans and REO


 

 

 
5,272

 
5,272

Total expenses
7,924

 
114,759

 
32,068

 
14,942

 
169,693

Income (loss) from operations
(554
)
 
18,119

 
2,687

 
1,640

 
21,892

Other income
13,616

 
572

 


 
5

 
14,193

Net income before noncontrolling interest
13,062

 
18,691

 
2,687

 
1,645

 
36,085

Less: Net income attributable to noncontrolling interest


 


 


 
987

 
987

Net income
13,062

 
18,691

 
2,687

 
658

 
35,098

Company’s equity in earnings of unconsolidated entities (3)
10,664

 
11,272

 
1,402

 
132

 
23,470

(3)
Differences between the Company’s equity in earnings (losses) of unconsolidated entities and the underlying net income of the entities are primarily a result of impairments related to the Company’s investments in unconsolidated entities, distributions from entities in excess of the carrying amount of the Company’s net investment and the Company’s share of the entities profits related to home sites purchased by the Company that reduces the Company’s cost basis of the home sites.
5. Investments in Non-performing Loan Portfolios and Foreclosed Real Estate
The Company’s investment in non-performing loan portfolios consisted of the following at October 31, 2012 and 2011 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
Unpaid principal balance
$
99,693

 
$
171,559

Discount on acquired loans
(62,524
)
 
(108,325
)
Carrying value
$
37,169

 
$
63,234

In fiscal 2012, Gibraltar acquired 12 non-performing loans with an unpaid principal balance of approximately $56.6 million. The purchase included non-performing loans primarily secured by commercial land and buildings in various stages of completion.
In September 2011, Gibraltar acquired 38 non-performing loans with an unpaid principal balance of approximately $71.4 million. The purchase included residential acquisition, development and construction loans secured by properties at various stages of completion.
In March 2011, the Company, through Gibraltar, acquired a 60% participation in a portfolio of non-performing loans. The portfolio of 83 loans, with an unpaid principal balance of approximately $200.3 million consisted primarily of residential acquisition, development and construction loans secured by properties at various stages of completion. The Company oversees the day-to-day management of the portfolio in accordance with the business plans that are jointly approved by the Company and the co-participant. The Company receives a management fee for such services. The Company recognizes income from the loan portfolio based upon its participation interest until such time as the portfolio meets certain internal rates of return as stipulated in the participation agreement. Upon reaching the stipulated internal rates of return, the Company will be entitled to receive additional income above its participation percentage from the portfolio.

F-21



The following table summarizes, for the portfolios acquired in fiscal 2012 and 2011, the accretable yield and the non-accretable difference on the Company's investment in the non-performing loan portfolios as of their acquisition date (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
Contractually required payments, including interest
$
58,234

 
$
200,047

Non-accretable difference
(8,235
)
 
(81,723
)
Cash flows expected to be collected
49,999

 
118,324

Accretable difference
(20,514
)
 
(51,462
)
Non-performing loans carrying amount
$
29,485

 
$
66,862

The activity in the accretable yield for the Company’s investments in the non-performing loan portfolios for the years ended October 31, 2012 and 2011 was as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
Balance, beginning of period
$
42,326

 
$

Loans acquired
20,514

 
51,462

Additions
5,539

 


Deletions
(40,227
)
 
(4,656
)
Accretion
(10,956
)
 
(4,480
)
Balance, end of period
$
17,196

 
$
42,326

Additions primarily represent reclassifications from nonaccretable yield to accretable yield and the impact of impairments. The additions to accretable yield and the accretion of interest income are based on various estimates regarding loan performance and the value of the underlying real estate securing the loans. As the Company continues to gather additional information regarding the loans and the underlying collateral, the accretable yield may change. Therefore, the amount of accretable income recorded in the years ended October 31, 2012 and 2011 is not necessarily indicative of expected future results. Deletions primarily represent disposal of loans, which includes foreclosure of the underlying collateral and result in the removal of the loans from the accretable yield portfolios.
Real Estate Owned
The following table presents the activity in REO at October 31, 2012 and 2011 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
Balance, beginning of period
$
5,939

 
$

Additions
54,174

 
5,939

Sales
(1,353
)
 

Impairments
(126
)
 

Depreciation
(281
)
 

Balance, end of period
$
58,353

 
$
5,939

As of October 31, 2012, approximately $5.9 million and $52.4 million of REO was classified as held-for-sale and held-and-used, respectively. At October 31, 2011, all REO was classified as held-and-used.
General
The Company’s earnings from its Gibraltar's operations, excluding its equity earnings from its investment in the Structured Asset Joint Venture, are included in other income - net in its Consolidated Statements of Operations. In the years ended October 31, 2012 and 2011, the Company recognized $4.5 million and $1.5 million of earnings, respectively, from Gibraltar's operations.


F-22



6. Credit Facility, Loans Payable, Senior Notes, Senior Subordinated Notes and Mortgage Company Warehouse Loan
Credit Facility
On October 22, 2010, the Company entered into an $885 million revolving credit facility (“Credit Facility”) with 12 banks, which extends to October 2014. At October 31, 2012, the Company had no outstanding borrowings under the Credit Facility but had outstanding letters of credit of approximately $70.1 million. At October 31, 2012, interest would have been payable on borrowings under the Credit Facility at 2.75% (subject to adjustment based upon the Company’s debt rating and leverage ratios) above the Eurodollar rate or at other specified variable rates as selected by the Company from time to time. Under the terms of the Credit Facility, the Company is not permitted to allow its maximum leverage ratio (as defined in the Credit Facility agreement) to exceed 1.75 to 1.00 and is required to maintain a minimum tangible net worth (as defined in the Credit Facility agreement) of approximately $2.16 billion at October 31, 2012. At October 31, 2012, the Company’s leverage ratio was approximately 0.31 to 1.00 and its tangible net worth was approximately $3.07 billion. Based upon the minimum tangible net worth requirement, the Company’s ability to pay dividends and repurchase its common stock was limited to an aggregate amount of approximately $1.21 billion at October 31, 2012. At October 31, 2012, the Company is obligated to pay an undrawn commitment fee of 0.63% (subject to adjustment based upon the Company’s debt rating and leverage ratios) based on the average daily unused amount of the facility.
Loans Payable
The Company’s loans payable represent purchase money mortgages on properties the Company has acquired that the seller has financed and various revenue bonds that were issued by government entities on behalf of the Company to finance community infrastructure and the Company’s manufacturing facilities. Information regarding the Company’s loans payable at October 31, 2012 and 2011 is included in the table below ($ amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
Aggregate loans payable at October 31
$
99,817

 
$
106,556

Weighted-average interest rate
3.64
%
 
3.99
%
Interest rate range
0.26% - 7.87%

 
0.16% - 7.87%

Loans secured by assets
 
 
 
Carrying value of loans secured by assets
$
98,952

 
$
105,092

Carrying value of assets securing loans
$
311,104

 
$
283,169

Senior Notes
At October 31, 2012 and 2011, the Company’s senior notes consisted of the following (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
6.875% Senior Notes due November 15, 2012
$
59,068

 
$
139,776

5.95% Senior Notes due September 15, 2013
104,785

 
141,635

4.95% Senior Notes due March 15, 2014
267,960

 
267,960

5.15% Senior Notes due May 15, 2015
300,000

 
300,000

8.91% Senior Notes due October 15, 2017
400,000

 
400,000

6.75% Senior Notes due November 1, 2019
250,000

 
250,000

5.875% Senior Notes due February 15, 2022
419,876

 


0.5% Exchangeable Senior Notes due September 15, 2032
287,500

 


Bond discount
(8,726
)
 
(8,399
)
 
$
2,080,463

 
$
1,490,972

The senior notes are the unsecured obligations of Toll Brothers Finance Corp., a 100%-owned subsidiary of the Company. The payment of principal and interest is fully and unconditionally guaranteed, jointly and severally, by the Company and a majority of its home building subsidiaries (together with Toll Brothers Finance Corp., the “Senior Note Parties”). The senior notes rank equally in right of payment with all the Senior Note Parties’ existing and future unsecured senior indebtedness, including the Credit Facility. The senior notes are structurally subordinated to the prior claims of creditors, including trade creditors, of the subsidiaries of the Company that are not guarantors of the senior notes. The senior notes, other than the 0.5% Exchangeable Senior Notes due 2032 (“0.5% Senior Notes”), are redeemable in whole or in part at any time at the option of the Company, at

F-23



prices that vary based upon the then-current rates of interest and the remaining original term of the notes. The 0.5% Senior Notes are not redeemable by the Company prior to September 15, 2017.
In February 2012, the Company, through Toll Brothers Finance Corp., issued $300 million principal amount of 5.875% Senior Notes due 2022 (the “5.875% Senior Notes”). The Company received $296.2 million of net proceeds from the issuance of the 5.875% Senior Notes. In March 2012, the Company, through Toll Brothers Finance Corp., issued an additional $119.9 million principal amount of its 5.875% Senior Notes in exchange for $80.7 million principal amount of its 6.875% Senior Notes due 2012 and $36.9 million principal amount of its 5.95% Senior Notes due 2013. The Company recognized a charge of $1.2 million in fiscal 2012 representing the aggregate costs associated with the exchange of both series of notes; these expenses are included in selling, general and administrative expenses in the Consolidated Statement of Operations.
In September 2012, the Company, through Toll Brothers Finance Corp., issued $287.5 million principal amount of 0.5% Senior Notes. The Company received $282.5 million of net proceeds from the issuance of the 0.5% Senior Notes. The 0.5% Senior Notes are exchangeable into shares of the Company's common stock at an exchange rate of 20.3749 shares per $1,000 principal amount of notes, corresponding to an initial exchange price of approximately $49.08 per share of the Company's common stock. If all of the 0.5% Senior Notes are exchanged, the Company would issue approximately 5.9 million shares of its common stock. Shares issuable upon conversion of the 0.5% Senior Notes are included in the calculation of diluted earnings per share (See Note 11, "Income (Loss) Per Share Information" for more information regarding the number of shares included). Holders of the 0.5% Senior Notes will have the right to require Toll Brothers Finance Corp. to repurchase their notes for cash equal to 100% of their principal amount, plus accrued but unpaid interest, on each of December 15, 2017, September 15, 2022 and September 15, 2027. Toll Brothers Finance Corp. will have the right to redeem the 0.5% Senior Notes on or after September 15, 2017 for cash equal to 100% of their principal amount, plus accrued but unpaid interest.
The Company repurchased $55.1 million of its 6.875% Senior Notes due 2012 in fiscal 2011 and $45.5 million ($13.5 million of its 5.95% Senior notes due 2013 and $32.0 million of its 4.95% Senior Notes due 2014) of its senior notes in fiscal 2010. In fiscal 2011 and 2010, the Company recognized $3.8 million and $1.2 million, respectively, of expenses related to the retirement of these notes. Expenses related to the retirement of notes include, if any, premium paid, write-off of unamortized debt issuance costs and other debt redemption costs.
In November 2012, the Company repaid the $59.1 million of outstanding 6.875% Senior Notes due November 15, 2012.
Senior Subordinated Notes
The senior subordinated notes were the unsecured obligations of Toll Corp., a 100%-owned subsidiary of the Company were guaranteed on a senior subordinated basis by the Company, were subordinated to all existing and future senior indebtedness of the Company and were structurally subordinated to the prior claims of creditors, including trade creditors, of the Company’s subsidiaries other than Toll Corp. The indentures governing these notes restricted certain payments by the Company, including cash dividends and repurchases of Company stock.
The Company redeemed $47.9 million of its 8.25% Senior Subordinated Notes due December 2011 in fiscal 2010 and recognized $34,000 of expenses related to the retirement of the notes.
Mortgage Company Loan Facilities
TBI Mortgage Company (“TBI Mortgage”), the Company’s wholly-owned mortgage subsidiary, has a Master Repurchase Agreement (the “Repurchase Agreement”) with Comerica Bank. The purpose of the Repurchase Agreement is to finance the origination of mortgage loans by TBI Mortgage and it is accounted for as a secured borrowing under ASC 860. The Repurchase Agreement, as amended, provides for loan purchases up to $50 million, subject to certain sublimits. In addition, the Repurchase Agreement provides for an accordion feature under which TBI Mortgage may request that the aggregate commitments under the Repurchase Agreement be increased to an amount up to $75 million for a short period of time. The Repurchase Agreement, as amended, expires on July 23, 2013 and bears interest at LIBOR plus 2.00%, with a minimum rate of 3.00%. Borrowings under this facility are included in the fiscal 2013 maturities.
At October 31, 2012 and 2011, there were $72.7 million and $57.4 million, respectively, outstanding under the Repurchase Agreement, which are included in liabilities in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets. At October 31, 2012 and 2011, amounts outstanding under the Repurchase Agreement were collateralized by $86.4 million and $63.2 million, respectively, of mortgage loans held for sale, which are included in assets in the Company’s Consolidated Balance Sheets. As of October 31, 2012, there were no aggregate outstanding purchase price limitations reducing the amount available to TBI Mortgage. There are several restrictions on purchased loans under the Repurchase Agreement, including that they cannot be sold to others, they cannot be pledged to anyone other than the agent and they cannot support any other borrowing or repurchase agreement.

F-24



General
As of October 31, 2012, the annual aggregate maturities of the Company’s loans and notes during each of the next five fiscal years are as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
Amount
2013
$
265,837

2014
278,092

2015
310,103

2016
402,068

2017
1,003,323

7. Accrued Expenses
Accrued expenses at October 31, 2012 and 2011 consisted of the following (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
Land, land development and construction
$
124,731

 
$
109,574

Compensation and employee benefit
111,093

 
96,037

Insurance and litigation
101,908

 
130,714

Warranty
41,706

 
42,474

Interest
28,204

 
25,968

Commitments to unconsolidated entities
2,135

 
60,205

Other
66,573

 
56,079

 
$
476,350

 
$
521,051

The Company accrues expected warranty costs at the time each home is closed and title and possession have been transferred to the home buyer. Changes in the warranty accrual during fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010 were as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Balance, beginning of year
$
42,474

 
$
45,835

 
$
53,937

Additions for homes closed during the year
10,560

 
8,809

 
9,147

Additions for liabilities acquired
731

 


 


Additions (reductions) to accruals for homes closed in prior years
479

 
(828
)
 
(4,684
)
Charges incurred
(12,538
)
 
(11,342
)
 
(12,565
)
Balance, end of year
$
41,706

 
$
42,474

 
$
45,835












F-25



8. Income Taxes
The following table provides a reconciliation of the Company’s effective tax rate from the federal statutory tax rate for the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 ($ amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
$
 
%*
 
$
 
%*
 
$
 
%*
Federal tax benefit at statutory rate
39,530

 
35.0

 
(10,278
)
 
35.0

 
(41,015
)
 
35.0

State taxes, net of federal benefit
4,711

 
4.2

 
(954
)
 
3.2

 
(3,809
)
 
3.3

Reversal of accrual for uncertain tax positions
(34,167
)
 
(30.3
)
 
(52,306
)
 
178.1

 
(39,485
)
 
33.7

Accrued interest on anticipated tax assessments
5,000

 
4.4

 
3,055

 
(10.4
)
 
9,263

 
(7.9
)
Increase in unrecognized tax benefits
5,489

 
4.9

 

 


 
35,575

 
(30.4
)
Increase in deferred tax assets, net

 

 
(25,948
)
 
88.4

 

 

Valuation allowance — recognized

 

 
43,876

 
(149.4
)
 
55,492

 
(47.4
)
Valuation allowance — reversed
(394,718
)
 
(349.5
)
 
(25,689
)
 
87.5

 
(128,640
)
 
109.8

Other
(49
)
 

 
(917
)
 
3.1

 
(1,194
)
 
1.0

Tax benefit
(374,204
)
 
(331.3
)
 
(69,161
)
 
235.5

 
(113,813
)
 
97.1

*
Due to rounding, amounts may not add.
The Company currently operates in 19 states and is subject to various state tax jurisdictions. The Company estimates its state tax liability based upon the individual taxing authorities’ regulations, estimates of income by taxing jurisdiction and the Company’s ability to utilize certain tax-saving strategies. Due primarily to a change in the Company’s estimate of the allocation of income or loss, as the case may be, among the various taxing jurisdictions and changes in tax regulations and their impact on the Company’s tax strategies, the Company’s estimated rate for state income taxes was 6.4% in fiscal 2012 and 5.0% for each of fiscal 2011 and 2010.
The following table provides information regarding the (benefit) provision for income taxes for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Federal
$
(329,277
)
 
$
(21,517
)
 
$
(67,318
)
State
(44,927
)
 
(47,644
)
 
(46,495
)
 
$
(374,204
)
 
$
(69,161
)
 
$
(113,813
)
 
 
 
 
 
 
Current
$
(21,296
)
 
$
(43,212
)
 
$
(156,985
)
Deferred
(352,908
)
 
(25,949
)
 
43,172

 
$
(374,204
)
 
$
(69,161
)
 
$
(113,813
)
In November 2009, the Worker, Homeownership, and Business Assistance Act of 2009 was enacted into law which allowed the Company to carry back its fiscal 2010 taxable loss against taxable income reported in fiscal 2006 and receive a federal tax refund in its second quarter of fiscal 2011 of $154.3 million. The tax losses generated in fiscal 2010 were primarily from the recognition for tax purposes of previously recognized book impairments and the recognition of stock option expenses recognized for book purposes in prior years.

F-26



The following table provides a reconciliation of the change in the unrecognized tax benefits for the years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Balance, beginning of year
$
104,669

 
$
160,446

 
$
171,366

Increase in benefit as a result of tax positions taken in prior years
5,000

 
8,168

 
14,251

Increase in benefit as a result of tax positions taken in current year
5,489

 


 
15,675

Decrease in benefit as a result of settlements

 
(17,954
)
 


Decrease in benefit as a result of completion of audits
(1,782
)
 
(33,370
)
 

Decrease in benefit as a result of lapse of statute of limitation
(32,385
)
 
(12,621
)
 
(40,846
)
Balance, end of year
$
80,991

 
$
104,669

 
$
160,446

The Company has reached final settlement of its federal tax returns for fiscal years through 2009. The federal settlements resulted in a reduction in the Company’s unrecognized tax benefits. The state impact of any amended federal return remains subject to examination by various states for a period of up to one year after formal notification of such amendments is made to the states.
The Company’s unrecognized tax benefits are included in “Income taxes payable” on the Company’s consolidated balance sheets. If these unrecognized tax benefits reverse in the future, they would have a beneficial impact on the Company’s effective tax rate at that time. During the next twelve months, it is reasonably possible that the amount of unrecognized tax benefits will change but we are not able to provide a range of such change. The anticipated changes will be principally due to the expiration of tax statutes, settlements with taxing jurisdictions, increases due to new tax positions taken and the accrual of estimated interest and penalties.
The Company recognizes in its tax benefit, potential interest and penalties. The following table provides information as to the amounts recognized in its tax provision, before reduction for applicable taxes and reversal of previously accrued interest and penalties, of potential interest and penalties in the twelve-month periods ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, and the amounts accrued for potential interest and penalties at October 31, 2012 and 2011 (amounts in thousands).
Expense recognized in statements of operations
 
Fiscal year
 
2012
$
5,000

2011
$
4,700

2010
$
14,300

Accrued at:
 
October 31, 2012
$
24,906

October 31, 2011
$
29,200

The amounts accrued for interest and penalties are included in “Income taxes payable” on the Company’s consolidated balance sheets.

Since the beginning of fiscal 2007, the Company recorded significant deferred tax assets as a result of the recognition of inventory impairments and impairments of investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities. In accordance with GAAP, the Company assessed whether a valuation allowance should be established based on its determination of whether it is “more likely than not” that some portion or all of the deferred tax assets would not be realized. In fiscal 2009, the Company recorded valuation allowances against its deferred tax assets. The Company believed that the continued downturn in the housing market, the uncertainty as to its length and magnitude, the Company's continued recognition of impairment charges, and its operating losses were significant negative evidence of the need for a valuation allowance against its net deferred tax assets.

At October 31, 2012, the Company considered the need for a valuation allowance against its deferred tax assets considering all available and objectively verifiable positive and negative evidence. That evidence principally consisted of (i) an indication that the events and conditions that gave rise to significant losses in recent years were unlikely to recur in the foreseeable future, (ii) a return to profitability in fiscal 2012 together with expectations of continuing profitability in fiscal 2013, supported by existing backlog, and beyond, and (iii) the term of the statutory operating loss carry-forward periods provide evidence that it is more likely than not that these deferred tax assets will be realized.

F-27



At October 31, 2012, the Company re-evaluated the evidence related to the need for its deferred tax asset valuation allowances and determined that the valuation allowance on its federal deferred tax assets and certain state valuation allowances were no longer needed. Accordingly, in fiscal 2012, the Company reversed a valuation allowance in the amount of $394.7 million. This has been reported as a component of income tax benefit in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations. The remaining valuation allowance of $57.0 million relates to deferred tax assets in states that have not met the “more-likely-than-not” realization threshold criteria. The Company will continue to review its deferred tax assets in accordance with ASC 740.
The components of net deferred tax assets and liabilities at October 31, 2012 and 2011 are set forth below (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011*
Deferred tax assets:
 
 
 
Accrued expenses
$
57,734

 
$
59,411

Impairment charges
319,818

 
368,459

Inventory valuation differences
29,288

 
30,802

Stock-based compensation expense
44,336

 
38,454

Amounts related to unrecognized tax benefits
36,934

 
47,387

State tax, net operating loss carryforward
50,006

 
52,323

Federal tax net operating loss carryforward
25,170

 
11,232

Other
20,169

 
11,783

Total assets
583,455

 
619,851

Deferred tax liabilities:
 
 
 
Capitalized interest
102,713

 
84,915

Deferred income
6,608

 
7,771

Expenses taken for tax purposes not for book
36,811

 
58,502

Depreciation
3,994

 
2,344

Deferred marketing
18,229

 
14,557

Total liabilities
168,355

 
168,089

Net deferred tax assets before valuation allowances
415,100

 
451,762

Cumulative valuation allowance - state
(57,044
)
 
(89,142
)
Cumulative valuation allowance - federal


 
(362,620
)
Net deferred tax assets
$
358,056

 
$

*
To conform to the current period presentation, the October 31, 2011 amounts reflect adjustments to certain deferred amounts by $24.4 million with a corresponding adjustment to the related valuation allowances.

For federal income tax purposes, the Company is allowed to carry forward tax losses for 20 years and apply such tax losses to future taxable income to realize its federal deferred tax assets. At October 31, 2012, the Company estimates that it will have federal tax loss carryfowards of approximately $106.3 million resulting from losses incurred for federal income tax purposes during fiscal years 2011 and 2012.

We file tax returns in the various states in which we do business. Each state has its own statutes regarding the use of tax loss carryforwards. Some of the states in which we do business do not allow for the carryfoward of losses while others allow for carryforwards for 5 years to 20 years.
9. Stockholders’ Equity
The Company’s authorized capital stock consists of 400 million shares of common stock, $.01 par value per share and 15 million shares of preferred stock, $.01 par value per share. At October 31, 2012, the Company had 168.6 million shares of common stock issued and outstanding (excluding 0.1 million shares of treasury stock), 11.7 million shares of common stock reserved for outstanding stock options and restricted stock units, 5.5 million shares of common stock reserved for future stock option and award issuances, 5.9 million reserved for the conversion of its 0.5% senior notes and 0.6 million shares of common stock reserved for issuance under the Company’s employee stock purchase plan. As of October 31, 2012, the Company had issued no shares of preferred stock.

F-28



Issuance of Common Stock
In fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010, the Company issued 1,350, 1,250 and 1,250 shares of restricted common stock, respectively, pursuant to its stock incentive plans to certain outside directors. The Company is amortizing the fair market value of the awards on the date of grant over the period of time that each award vests. At October 31, 2012, 1,975 shares of the restricted stock awards were unvested.
Stock Repurchase Program
In March 2003, the Company’s Board of Directors authorized the repurchase of up to 20 million shares of its common stock from time to time, in open market transactions or otherwise, for the purpose of providing shares for its various benefit plans.
The following table provides information about the Company’s share repurchase program for the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Number of shares purchased (in thousands)
20

 
3,068

 
31

Average price per share
$
25.62

 
$
16.00

 
$
19.24

Remaining authorization at October 31(in thousands)
8,766

 
8,786

 
11,855

Stockholder Rights Plan and Transfer Restriction
In June 2007, the Company adopted a shareholder rights plan (“2007 Rights Plan”). The rights issued pursuant to the 2007 Rights Plan will become exercisable upon the earlier of (i) ten days following a public announcement that a person or group of affiliated or associated persons has acquired, or obtained the right to acquire, beneficial ownership of 15% or more of the outstanding shares of the Company’s common stock or (ii) ten business days following the commencement of a tender offer or exchange offer that would result in a person or group beneficially owning 15% or more of the outstanding shares of common stock. No rights were exercisable at October 31, 2012.
On March 17, 2010, the Board of Directors of the Company adopted a Certificate of Amendment to the Second Restated Certificate of Incorporation of the Company (the “Certificate of Amendment”). The Certificate of Amendment includes an amendment approved by the Company’s stockholders at the 2010 Annual Meeting of Stockholders' that restricts certain transfers of the Company’s common stock in order to preserve the tax treatment of the Company’s net operating and unrealized tax losses. The Certificate of Amendment’s transfer restrictions generally restrict any direct or indirect transfer of the Company’s common stock if the effect would be to increase the direct or indirect ownership of any Person (as defined in the Certificate of Amendment) from less than 4.95% to 4.95% or more of the Company’s common stock or increase the ownership percentage of a person owning or deemed to own 4.95% or more of the Company’s common stock. Any direct or indirect transfer attempted in violation of this restriction would be void as of the date of the prohibited transfer as to the purported transferee.
10. Stock-Based Benefit Plans
The Company has two active stock incentive plans, one for employees (including officers) and one for non-employee directors. The Company’s active stock incentive plans provide for the granting of incentive stock options (solely to employees) and non-qualified stock options with a term of up to ten years at a price not less than the market price of the stock at the date of grant. The Company’s active stock incentive plans also provide for the issuance of stock appreciation rights and restricted and unrestricted stock awards and stock units, which may be performance-based.
The Company grants stock options, restricted stock and various types of restricted stock units to its employees and its non-employee directors under its stock incentive plans. Beginning in fiscal 2012, the Company changed the mix of stock-based compensation to its employees by reducing the number of stock options it grants and, in their place, issued non-performance- based restricted stock units as a form of compensation. At October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, the Company had 5,489,000, 6,712,000 and 8,038,000 shares, respectively, available for grant under its stock incentive plans.
The Company has one additional stock incentive plan for employees, officers and directors that is inactive except for outstanding stock option awards at October 31, 2012. No additional options may be granted under this plan. Stock options granted under this plan were made with a term of up to ten years at a price not less than the market price of the stock at the date of grant and generally vested over a four-year period for employees and a two-year period for non-employee directors.

F-29



The following table provides information regarding the amount of total stock-based compensation expense recognized by the Company for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Total stock-based compensation expense recognized
$
15,575

 
$
12,548

 
$
9,689

Income tax benefit recognized
$
5,711

 
$
4,793

 
$
3,711

At October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, the aggregate unamortized value of outstanding stock-based compensation awards was approximately $14.2 million, $12.7 million and $11.1 million, respectively.
Information about the Company’s more significant stock-based compensation programs is outlined below.
Stock Options:
Stock options granted to employees generally vest over a four-year period, although certain grants may vest over a longer or shorter period, and stock options granted to non-employee directors generally vest over a two-year period. Shares issued upon the exercise of a stock option are either from shares held in treasury or newly issued shares.
The fair value of each option award is estimated on the date of grant using a lattice-based option valuation model that uses assumptions noted in the following table. Expected volatilities were based on implied volatilities from traded options on the Company’s stock, historical volatility of the Company’s stock and other factors. The expected lives of options granted were derived from the historical exercise patterns and anticipated future patterns and represent the period of time that options granted are expected to be outstanding; the range given below results from certain groups of employees exhibiting different behaviors. The risk-free rate for periods within the contractual life of the option is based on the U.S. Treasury yield curve in effect at the time of grant.
The following table summarizes the weighted-average assumptions and fair value used for stock option grants in each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Expected volatility
44.20% - 50.24%
 
45.38% - 49.46%
 
46.74% - 51.41%
Weighted-average volatility
46.99%
 
47.73%
 
49.51%
Risk-free interest rate
0.78% - 1.77%
 
1.64% - 3.09%
 
2.15% - 3.47%
Expected life (years)
4.59 - 9.06
 
4.29 - 8.75
 
4.44 - 8.69
Dividends
none
 
none
 
none
Weighted-average fair value per share of options granted
$8.70
 
$7.94
 
$7.63
The fair value of stock option grants is recognized evenly over the vesting period of the options or over the period between the grant date and the time the option becomes non-forfeitable by the employee, whichever is shorter. Stock option expense is generally included in the Company’s selling, general and administrative expenses in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations. Information regarding the stock compensation expense, related to stock options, for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010 was as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Stock compensation expense recognized - options
$
7,411

 
$
8,626

 
$
9,332

In fiscal 2010, as part of severance plans for certain employees, the Company extended the period in which an option could be exercised on 175,813 options. The Company expensed $552,000 related to these extensions in fiscal 2010. This amount is included in the stock-based compensation expense recognized in the table above.
At October 31, 2012, total compensation cost related to non-vested stock option awards not yet recognized was approximately $7.2 million and the weighted-average period over which the Company expects to recognize such compensation costs and tax benefit is 2.4 years.

F-30



The following table summarizes stock option activity for the Company’s plans during each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands, except per share amounts):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
Number
of
options
 
Weighted-
average
exercise
price
 
Number
of
options
 
Weighted-
average
exercise
price
 
Number
of
options
 
Weighted-
average
exercise
price
Balance, beginning
12,868

 
$
20.94

 
14,339

 
$
19.36

 
16,123

 
$
17.73

Granted
777

 
20.50

 
1,103

 
19.32

 
1,015

 
18.39

Exercised
(2,941
)
 
12.52

 
(2,467
)
 
11.07

 
(2,498
)
 
8.72

Canceled
(35
)
 
20.67

 
(107
)
 
20.12

 
(301
)
 
17.03

Balance, ending
10,669

 
$
23.23

 
12,868

 
$
20.94

 
14,339

 
$
19.36

Options exercisable, at October 31,
8,540

 
$
24.09

 
10,365

 
$
21.24

 
11,670

 
$
19.00

The weighted average remaining contractual life (in years) for options outstanding and exercisable at October 31, 2012 was 4.5 and 3.6 years, respectively.
The intrinsic value of options outstanding and exercisable is the difference between the fair market value of the Company’s common stock on the applicable date (“Measurement Value”) and the exercise price of those options that had an exercise price that was less than the Measurement Value. The intrinsic value of options exercised is the difference between the fair market value of the Company’s common stock on the date of exercise and the exercise price.
The following table provides information pertaining to the intrinsic value of options outstanding and exercisable at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Intrinsic value of options outstanding
106,084

 
16,839

 
35,214

Intrinsic value of options exercisable
77,936

 
16,839

 
35,214

Information pertaining to the intrinsic value of options exercised and the fair value of options that became vested or modified in each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 is provided below (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Intrinsic value of options exercised
39,730

 
23,573

 
25,327

Fair value of options vested
10,079

 
11,027

 
12,336

The Company’s stock incentive plans permit optionees to exercise stock options using a “net exercise” method at the discretion of the Executive Compensation Committee of the Board of Directors (“Executive Compensation Committee”). In a net exercise, the Company withholds from the total number of shares that otherwise would be issued to an optionee upon exercise of the stock option that number of shares having a fair market value at the time of exercise equal to the option exercise price and applicable income tax withholdings and remits the remaining shares to the optionee. The following table provides information regarding the use of the net exercise method for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Options exercised
303,412

 
194,000

 
1,201,372

Shares withheld
151,889

 
98,918

 
798,420

Shares issued
151,523

 
95,082

 
402,952

Average market value per share withheld
$
22.68

 
$
18.94

 
$
17.96

Aggregate market value of shares withheld (in thousands)
$
3,445

 
$
1,873

 
$
14,341


F-31



In addition, pursuant to the provisions of the Company’s stock incentive plans, optionees are permitted to use the value of the Company’s common stock that they own to pay for the exercise of options (“stock swap method”). The following table provides information regarding the use of the stock swap method for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Options exercised
19,686

 
28,900

 
29,512

Shares tendered
8,224

 
14,807

 
14,459

Shares issued
11,462

 
14,093

 
15,053

Average market value per share withheld
$
25.52

 
$
20.53

 
$
19.71

Aggregate market value of shares tendered (in thousands)
$
210

 
$
304

 
$
285

Performance Based Restricted Stock Units:
In December 2011, the Executive Compensation Committee approved awards of performance-based restricted stock units (“Performance-Based RSUs”) relating to shares of the Company’s common stock to certain of its senior management. The use of Performance-Based RSUs replaced the use of stock price-based restricted stock units awarded in prior years. The Performance-Based RSUs are based on the attainment of certain performance metrics of the Company in fiscal 2012. The number of shares underlying the Performance-Based RSUs that will be issued to the recipients may range from 90% to 110% of the base award depending on actual performance metrics as compared to the target performance metrics. The Performance-Based RSUs vest over a four-year period provided the recipients continue to be employed by the Company or serve on the Board of Directors of the Company (as applicable) as specified in the award document.
The value of the Performance-Based RSUs was determined to be equal to the estimated number of shares of the Company’s common stock to be issued multiplied by the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the New York Stock Exchange ("NYSE") on the date the Performance-Based RSUs were awarded. The Company evaluates the performance-based metrics quarterly and estimates the number of shares underlying the RSUs that are probable of being issued. The following table provides information regarding the issuance, valuation assumptions and amortization of the Company’s Performance-Based RSUs issued in fiscal 2012.
 
2012
Number of shares underlying Performance-Based RSUs to be issued
370,176

Closing price of the Company’s common stock on date of issuance
$
20.50

Estimated aggregate fair value of Performance-Based RSUs issued (in thousands)
$
7,589

Performance-Based RSU expense recognized (in thousands)
$
3,953

Unamortized value of Performance-Based RSUs at October 31, 2012 (in thousands)
$
3,636

Stock Price-Based Restricted Stock Units:
In each of December 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Executive Compensation Committee approved awards to certain of its executives of market performance-based restricted stock units (“Stock Price-Based RSUs”) relating to shares of the Company’s common stock. In fiscal 2012, the Company adopted a Performance-Based Restricted Stock Award program to replace the Stock Price-Based RSU program. The Stock Price-Based RSUs will vest and the recipients will be entitled to receive the underlying shares if the average closing price of the Company’s common stock on the NYSE, measured over any 20 consecutive trading days ending on or prior to five years from date of issuance of the Stock Price-Based RSUs increases 30% or more over the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the NYSE on the date of issuance (“Target Price”), provided the recipients continue to be employed by the Company or serve on the Board of Directors of the Company (as applicable) as specified in the award document. In fiscal 2012, the Target Price of the Stock Price-Based RSUs issued in December 2010, 2009 and 2008 were met. The Stock Price-Based RSUs issued in December 2008 were paid in fiscal 2012. The recipient of this RSU elected to use a portion of the shares underlying the RSU to pay the required income withholding taxes on the payout. The gross value of the RSU payout was $5,934,000 (200,000 shares), the income tax withholding was $2,409,000 (81,200 shares) and the net value of the shares delivered was $3,525,000 (118,800 shares).
The Company determined the aggregate value of the Stock Price-Based RSUs using a lattice-based option pricing model. Expenses related to the Stock Price-Based RSUs are included in the Company’s selling, general and administrative expenses. The following table provides information regarding the issuance, valuation assumptions, amortization and unamortized balances of the Company’s Stock Price-Based RSUs in and at the relevant periods and dates in fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010.

F-32



 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Stock Price-Based RSUs issued:
 
 
 
 
 
  Number issued
 
306,000

 
200,000

  Closing price of the Company’s common stock on date of issuance


 
$
19.32

 
$
18.38

  Target price


 
$
25.12

 
$
23.89

  Volatility


 
48.22
%
 
49.92
%
  Risk-free interest rate


 
1.99
%
 
2.43
%
  Expected life


 
3.0 years

 
3.0 years

  Aggregate fair value of Performance-Based RSUs issued (in thousands)


 
$
4,994

 
$
3,160

  Stock Price-Based RSU expense recognized (in thousands)
$
2,887

 
$
3,701

 
$
2,121

 
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
At October 31:
 
 
 
 
 
Aggregate outstanding Stock Price-Based RSUs
506,000

 
706,000

 
400,000

Cumulative unamortized value of Stock Price-Based RSUs (in thousands)
$
2,042

 
$
4,929

 
$
3,636

Non-performance Based Restricted Stock Units:
In December 2012, 2011 and 2010, the Company issued restricted stock units (“RSUs”) to various officers and employees. These RSUs generally vest in annual installments over a four-year period. The value of the RSUs was determined to be equal to the number of shares of the Company’s common stock to be issued pursuant to the RSUs, multiplied by the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the NYSE on the date the RSUs were awarded. The following table provides information regarding these RSUs.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Non-performance-Based RSUs issued:
 
 
 
 
 
Number issued
107,820

 
15,497

 
19,663

Closing price of the Company’s common stock on date of issuance
$
20.50

 
$
19.32

 
$
18.38

Aggregate fair value of RSUs issued (in thousands)
$
2,210

 
$
299

 
$
361

Non-performance-Based RSU expense recognized (in thousands):
 
 
 
 
 
Twelve months ended October 31,
$
156

 
$
144

 
$
138

 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
At October 31:
 
 
 
 
 
Aggregate Non-performance-Based RSUs outstanding
137,764

 
30,994

 
19,663

Cumulative unamortized value of Non-performance-Based RSUs (in thousands)
$
1,326

 
$
379

 
$
224

Restricted Stock Units in Lieu of Compensation
In December 2008, the Company issued restricted stock units (“RSUs”) relating to 62,051 shares of the Company’s common stock to a number of employees in lieu of a portion of the employees’ bonuses and in lieu of a portion of one employee’s 2009 salary. These RSUs, although not subject to forfeiture, will vest in annual installments over a four-year period, unless accelerated due to death, disability or termination of employment, as more fully described in the RSU award document. Because the RSUs are non-forfeitable, the value of the RSUs was determined to be equal to the number of shares of the Company’s common stock to be issued pursuant to the RSUs multiplied by $21.70, the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the NYSE on December 19, 2008, the date the RSUs were awarded. The amount applicable to employee bonuses was charged to the Company’s accrual for bonuses that it made in fiscal 2008 and the amount applicable to salary deferral ($130,000) was charged to selling, general and administrative expense in the three-month period ended January 31, 2009. The Company’s stock incentive plan permits the Company to withhold from the total number of shares that otherwise would be issued to a RSU recipient upon distribution that number of shares having a fair value at the time of distribution equal to the applicable income tax withholdings due and remit the remaining shares to the RSU participant. The following table

F-33



provides information relating to the distribution of shares and the withholding of taxes on the RSUs for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Shares withheld
356

 
741

 
924

Shares issued
7,982

 
8,975

 
2,749

Value of shares withheld (in thousands)
$
10

 
$
15

 
$
17

At October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, approximately 38,000, 46,000 and 56,000 RSUs, respectively, were outstanding.
Employee Stock Purchase Plan
The Company’s employee stock purchase plan enables substantially all employees to purchase the Company’s common stock at 95% of the market price of the stock on specified offering dates without restriction or at 85% of the market price of the stock on specified offering dates subject to restrictions. The plan, which terminates in December 2017, provides that 1.2 million shares be reserved for purchase. At October 31, 2012, 594,000 shares were available for issuance.
The following table provides information regarding the Company’s employee stock purchase plan for fiscal 2012, 2011 and 2010.
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Shares issued
18,456

 
23,079

 
23,587

Average price per share
$
22.58

 
$
15.59

 
$
16.20

Compensation expense recognized (in thousands)
$
63

 
$
54

 
$
57


11. Income (Loss) Per Share Information
Information pertaining to the calculation of income (loss) per share for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 is as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Numerator:
 
 
 
 
 
Net income (loss) as reported
$
487,146

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
Plus: Interest attributable to 0.5% Senor Notes, net of income tax benefit
78

 


 


Numerator for diluted earnings (loss) per share
$
487,224

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
 
 
 
 
 
 
Denominator:
 
 
 
 
 
Basic weighted-average shares
$
167,346

 
$
167,140

 
$
165,666

Common stock equivalents (a)
1,996

 
1,241

 


Shares attributable to 0.5% Senior Notes (b)
812

 

 


Diluted weighted-average shares
$
170,154

 
$
168,381

 
$
165,666

Other information:
 
 
 
 
 
Common stock equivalents excluded from diluted weighted-average shares due to anti-dilutive effect (a)


 


 
1,968

Weighted average number of anti-dilutive options (c)
3,646

 
7,936

 
8,401

Shares issued under stock incentive and employee stock purchase plans
2,927

 
2,390

 
1,712

(a)
Common stock equivalents represent the dilutive effect of outstanding in-the-money stock options using the treasury stock method, Stock Price-Based RSUs whose Target Price criteria have been met but are unpaid and shares expected to be issued under Performance-Based Restricted Stock Units. For fiscal 2010, there were no common stock equivalents used in the calculation of diluted earnings per share because the Company had a net loss and any incremental shares would be anti-dilutive.
(b)
On a full year basis, shares attributable to the 0.5% Senior Notes will be 5.9 million shares.
(c)
Based upon the average of the average quarterly closing prices of the Company’s common stock on the NYSE for the year.

F-34



12. Fair Value Disclosures
A summary of assets and (liabilities) at October 31, 2012 and 2011 related to the Company’s financial instruments, measured at fair value on a recurring basis, is set forth below (amounts in thousands).
 
 
 
 
Fair value
Financial Instrument
 
Fair value hierarchy
 
October 31, 2012
 
October 31, 2011
Corporate Securities
 
Level 2
 
$
260,772

 
$
233,572

Certificates of Deposit
 
Level 2
 
$
148,112

 


Short-Term Tax-Exempt Bond Fund
 
Level 1
 
$
30,184

 


Residential Mortgage Loans Held for Sale
 
Level 2
 
$
86,386

 
$
63,175

Forward Loan Commitments - Residential Mortgage Loans Held for Sale
 
Level 2
 
$
(102
)
 
$
218

Interest Rate Lock Commitments (“IRLCs”)
 
Level 2
 
$
(202
)
 
$
(147
)
Forward Loan Commitments—IRLCs
 
Level 2
 
$
202

 
$
147

At October 31, 2012 and 2011, the carrying value of cash and cash equivalents and restricted cash approximated fair value.
During fiscal 2012, the Company reevaluated the methodologies used by third party brokers in determining the estimated fair value of its investments in corporate securities. Based on this reevaluation, the Company concluded the estimated fair value of these investments was determined using Level 2 inputs. In prior years, corporate securities were classified as Level 1.
At the end of the reporting period, the Company determines the fair value of its mortgage loans held for sale and the forward loan commitments it has entered into as a hedge against the interest rate risk of its mortgage loans using the market approach to determine fair value. The evaluation is based on the current market pricing of mortgage loans with similar terms and values as of the reporting date and by applying such pricing to the mortgage loan portfolio. The Company recognizes the difference between the fair value and the unpaid principal balance of mortgage loans held for sale as a gain or loss. In addition, the Company recognizes the fair value of its forward loan commitments as a gain or loss. These gains and losses are included in other income - net. Interest income on mortgage loans held for sale is calculated based upon the stated interest rate of each loan and is included in other income - net.
The table below provides, for the periods indicated, the aggregate unpaid principal and fair value of mortgage loans held for sale as of the date indicated (amounts in thousands).
 
Aggregate unpaid
principal balance
 
Fair value
 
Excess
At October 31, 2012
$
84,986

 
$
86,386

 
$
1,400

At October 31, 2011
$
62,765

 
$
63,175

 
$
410

IRLCs represent individual borrower agreements that commit the Company to lend at a specified price for a specified period as long as there is no violation of any condition established in the commitment contract. These commitments have varying degrees of interest rate risk. The Company utilizes best-efforts forward loan commitments (“Forward Commitments”) to hedge the interest rate risk of the IRLCs and residential mortgage loans held for sale. Forward Commitments represent contracts with third-party investors for the future delivery of loans whereby the Company agrees to make delivery at a specified future date at a specified price. The IRLCs and Forward Commitments are considered derivative financial instruments under ASC 815, “Derivatives and Hedging”, which requires derivative financial instruments to be recorded at fair value. The Company estimates the fair value of such commitments based on the estimated fair value of the underlying mortgage loan and, in the case of IRLCs, the probability that the mortgage loan will fund within the terms of the IRLC. To manage the risk of non-performance of investors regarding the Forward Commitments, the Company assesses the credit worthiness of the investors on a periodic basis.
As of October 31, 2012 and 2011, the amortized cost, gross unrealized holding gains, gross unrealized holding losses, and fair value of marketable securities were as follows (amounts in thousands):

F-35



 
October 31, 2012
 
October 31, 2011
Amortized cost
$
438,755

 
$
233,852

Gross unrealized holding gains
451

 
28

Gross unrealized holding losses
(138
)
 
(308
)
Fair value
$
439,068

 
$
233,572

The remaining contractual maturities of marketable securities as of October 31, 2012 ranged from less than 1 month to 26 months.
The Company recognizes inventory impairment charges based on the difference in the carrying value of the inventory and its fair value at the time of the evaluation. The fair value of the aforementioned inventory was determined using Level 3 criteria. See Note 1, “Significant Accounting Policies, Inventory” for additional information regarding the Company’s methodology on determining fair value. As further discussed in Note 1, determining the fair value of a community's inventory involves a number of variables, many of which are interrelated. If the Company used a different input for any of the various unobservable inputs used in its impairment analysis, the results of the analysis may have been different, absent any other changes. The table below summarizes, for the periods indicated, the ranges of certain quantitative unobservable inputs utilized in determining the fair value of impaired communities.
 
Selling price per unit (in thousands)
 
Sales pace per year
(in units)
 
Discount rate
Three months ended October 31, 2012
$501 - $536
 
11
 
18.3%
Three months ended July 31, 2012
$175 - $571
 
4 - 12
 
14.0% - 17.5%
Three months ended April 30, 2012
$413 - $472
 
6 - 17
 
17.5%
Three months ended January 31, 2012
$344 - $2,287
 
1 - 25
 
13.0% - 18.8%
The table below provides, for the periods indicated, the fair value of operating communities whose carrying value was adjusted and the amount of impairment charges recognized on operating communities (amounts in thousands).
 
 
 
 
Impaired operating communities
Three months ended:
 
Number of
communities tested
 
Number of communities
 
Fair value of
communities, net
of impairment charges
 
Impairment charges recognized
Fiscal 2012:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
113

 
8

 
$
49,758

 
$
6,425

April 30
 
115

 
2

 
$
22,962

 
2,560

July 31
 
115

 
4

 
$
6,609

 
2,685

October 31
 
108

 
3

 
$
9,319

 
1,400

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
13,070

Fiscal 2011:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
143

 
6

 
$
56,105

 
$
5,475

April 30
 
142

 
9

 
$
40,765

 
10,725

July 31
 
129

 
2

 
$
867

 
175

October 31
 
114

 
3

 
$
3,367

 
710

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
17,085

Fiscal 2010:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
January 31
 
260

 
14

 
$
60,519

 
$
22,750

April 30
 
161

 
7

 
$
53,594

 
$
15,020

July 31
 
155

 
7

 
$
21,457

 
$
6,600

October 31
 
144

 
12

 
$
39,209

 
$
9,119

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
$
53,489


F-36



Gibraltar’s portfolio of non-performing loans was recorded at estimated fair value at inception based on the acquisition price as determined by Level 3 inputs and was based on the estimated discounted future cash flows to be generated by the loans discounted at the rates used to value the portfolios at the acquisition dates. The table below provides, as of the dates indicated, the carrying amount and estimated fair value of the non-performing loan portfolios (amounts in thousands).
 
October 31, 2012
 
October 31, 2011
Carrying amount
$
37,169

 
$
63,234

Estimated fair value
$
38,109

 
$
64,539

Gibraltar's REO was recorded at estimated fair value at the time it was acquired through foreclosure or deed in lieu actions using Level 3 inputs. The valuation techniques used are discussed in Note 1, "Significant Accounting Policies, Investments in Non-Performing Loan Portfolios and Foreclosed Real Estate".
The purchase price allocation performed in connection with our acquisition of CamWest was primarily based on Level 3 inputs. The assets acquired were primarily inventory. The valuation techniques used to value this inventory were similar to the criteria used in valuing inventory as described in Note 1, "Significant Accounting Policies, Inventory".
The table below provides, as of the dates indicated, the book value and estimated fair value of the Company’s debt at October 31, 2012 and 2011 (amounts in thousands).
 
 
 
October 31, 2012
 
October 31, 2011
 
Fair value hierarchy
 
Book value
 
Estimated
fair value
 
Book value
 
Estimated
fair value
Loans payable (a)
Level 2
 
$
99,817

 
$
99,093

 
$
106,556

 
$
98,950

Senior notes (b)
Level 1
 
2,089,189

 
2,340,189

 
1,499,371

 
1,614,010

Mortgage company warehouse loan (c)
Level 2
 
72,664

 
72,664

 
57,409

 
57,409

 
 
 
$
2,261,670

 
$
2,511,946

 
$
1,663,336

 
$
1,770,369

(a)
The estimated fair value of loans payable was based upon their indicated market prices or the interest rates that the Company believed were available to it for loans with similar terms and remaining maturities as of the applicable valuation date.
(b)
The estimated fair value of the Company’s senior notes is based upon their indicated market prices.
(c)
The Company believes that the carrying value of its mortgage company loan borrowings approximates their fair value.
13. Employee Retirement and Deferred Compensation Plans
Salary Deferral Savings Plans
The Company maintains salary deferral savings plans covering substantially all employees. During the first quarter of fiscal 2009, due to the continued downturn in the Company’s business, the Company suspended its matching contributions and discretionary contributions to one of the plans. In fiscal 2011, the Company elected to make a discretionary contribution of 1% of eligible compensation for the plan year ended December 31, 2010. The Company made a 1% discretionary contribution for the plan year ended December 31, 2011 and for the plan year ended December 31, 2012 it intends to make a contribution of 2% of eligible compensation. Beginning in the third quarter of fiscal 2011, the Company resumed a matching contribution of up to 1% of eligible compensation for employees electing to contribute via salary deferrals and increased the matching contribution to 2% in January 2012. The Company recognized an expense, net of plan forfeitures, with respect to the plans of $5.0 million and $2.7 million for the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012 and 2011, respectively. The Company recognized $38,000 of expense for one plan in fiscal 2010.
Deferred Compensation Plan
The Company has an unfunded, non-qualified deferred compensation plan that permits eligible employees to defer a portion of their compensation. The deferred compensation, together with certain Company contributions, earns various rates of return depending upon when the compensation was deferred and the length of time that it has been deferred. A portion of the deferred compensation and interest earned may be forfeited by a participant if he or she elects to withdraw the compensation prior to the end of the deferral period. At October 31, 2012 and 2011, the Company had accrued $20.7 million and $19.1 million, respectively, for its obligations under the plan.

F-37



Defined Benefit Retirement Plans
The Company has two unfunded defined benefit retirement plans. Retirement benefits generally vest when the participant has completed 15 or 20 years of service with the Company and reaches normal retirement age (age 62). Unrecognized prior service costs are being amortized over the period from the date participants enter the plans until their interests are fully vested. The Company used a 3.07%, 4.06% and 4.99% discount rate in its calculation of the present value of its projected benefit obligations at October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, respectively. The rates represent the approximate long-term investment rate at October 31 of the fiscal year for which the present value was calculated. Information related to the plans is based on actuarial information calculated as of October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010.

Information related to the Company’s retirement plans for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 is as follows (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Plan costs:
 
 
 
 
 
Service cost
$
389

 
$
305

 
$
270

Interest cost
1,212

 
1,290

 
1,396

Amortization of prior service cost
737

 
694

 
1,248

Acceleration of benefits


 


 
72

Amortization of unrecognized losses
66

 

 


 
$
2,404

 
$
2,289

 
$
2,986

Projected benefit obligation:
 
 
 
 
 
Beginning of year
$
29,766

 
$
26,037

 
$
25,161

Plan amendments adopted during year
575

 


 
202

Service cost
389

 
305

 
270

Interest cost
1,212

 
1,290

 
1,396

Benefit payments
(731
)
 
(504
)
 
(125
)
Change in unrecognized loss (gain)
3,108

 
2,638

 
(867
)
Projected benefit obligation, end of year
$
34,319

 
$
29,766

 
$
26,037

Unamortized prior service cost:
 
 
 
 
 
Beginning of year
$
3,333

 
$
4,027

 
$
5,145

Plan amendments adopted during year
575

 


 
130

Amortization of prior service cost
(737
)
 
(694
)
 
(1,248
)
Unamortized prior service cost, end of year
$
3,171

 
$
3,333

 
$
4,027

Accumulated unrecognized (loss) gain, October 31
$
(4,307
)
 
$
(1,265
)
 
$
1,372

Accumulated benefit obligation, October 31
$
34,319

 
$
29,766

 
$
26,037

Accrued benefit obligation, October 31
$
34,319

 
$
29,766

 
$
26,037

The table below provides, based upon the estimated retirement dates of the participants in the retirement plans, the amounts of benefits the Company would be required to pay in each of the next five fiscal years and for the five fiscal years ended October 31, 2022 in the aggregate (in thousands).
Year ending October 31,
Amount
2013
$
955

2014
$
1,042

2015
$
1,645

2016
$
1,770

2017
$
2,028

November 1, 2017 - October 31, 2022
$
12,247




F-38



14. Accumulated Other Comprehensive Loss and Total Comprehensive Income (Loss)
Accumulated other comprehensive loss at October 31, 2012 and 2011 was $4.8 million and $2.9 million, respectively, and was primarily related to employee retirement plans.
The table below provides, for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, the components of total comprehensive income (loss) (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Net income (loss) as reported
$
487,146

 
$
39,795

 
$
(3,374
)
Changes in pension liability, net of tax benefit
(1,839
)
 
(1,934
)
 
1,986

Change in fair value of available-for-sale securities, net of tax benefit
476

 
(192
)
 
74

Unrealized loss on derivative held by equity investee, net of tax benefit
(554
)
 


 


Total comprehensive income (loss)
$
485,229

 
$
37,669

 
$
(1,314
)
Tax benefit recognized in total comprehensive income
$
1,263

 


 


Due to the pre-tax losses recognized by the Company in fiscal 2011 and 2010 and its inability to forecast future profitability, the Company did not recognize tax benefit (provision) on the changes in other comprehensive income (loss) in those years. The benefit was recognized in fiscal 2012.
15. Commitments and Contingencies
Land Purchase Commitments
Generally, the Company’s option and purchase agreements to acquire land parcels do not require the Company to purchase those land parcels, although the Company may, in some cases, forfeit any deposit balance outstanding if and when it terminates an option and purchase agreement. If market conditions are weak, approvals needed to develop the land are uncertain or other factors exist that make the purchase undesirable, the Company may not expect to acquire the land. Whether an option and purchase agreement is legally terminated or not, the Company reviews the amount recorded for the land parcel subject to the option and purchase agreement to determine if the amount is recoverable. While the Company may not have formally terminated the option and purchase agreements for those land parcels that it does not expect to acquire, it has written off any non-refundable deposits and costs previously capitalized to such land parcels in the periods that it determined such costs were not recoverable.
Information regarding the Company’s land purchase commitments at October 31, 2012 and 2011 is provided in the table below (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
Aggregate purchase commitments:
 
 
 
Unrelated parties
$
742,918

 
$
551,905

Unconsolidated entities that the Company has investments in
4,067

 
12,471

Total
$
746,985

 
$
564,376

Deposits against aggregate purchase commitments
$
42,921

 
$
37,987

Additional cash required to acquire land
704,064

 
526,389

Total
$
746,985

 
$
564,376

Amount of additional cash required to acquire land included in accrued expenses
$
4,328

 
$
44

The Company has additional land parcels under option that have been excluded from the aforementioned aggregate purchase amounts since it does not believe that it will complete the purchase of these land parcels and no additional funds will be required from the Company to terminate these contracts.

F-39



Legal Proceedings
The Company is involved in various claims and litigation arising principally in the ordinary course of business. The Company believes that adequate provision for resolution of all current claims and pending litigation has been made for probable losses and the disposition of these matters will not have a material adverse effect on the Company’s results of operations and liquidity or on its financial condition.
Investments in and Advances to Unconsolidated Entities
At October 31, 2012, the Company had investments in and advances to a number of unconsolidated entities, was committed to invest or advance additional funds and had guaranteed a portion of the indebtedness and/or loan commitments of these entities. See Note 4, “Investments in and Advances to Unconsolidated Entities,” for more information regarding the Company’s commitments to these entities.
Surety Bonds and Letters of Credit
At October 31, 2012, the Company had outstanding surety bonds amounting to $382.2 million, primarily related to its obligations to various governmental entities to construct improvements in the Company’s various communities. The Company estimates that $241.6 million of work remains on these improvements. The Company has an additional $57.0 million of surety bonds outstanding that guarantee other obligations of the Company. The Company does not believe it is probable that any outstanding bonds will be drawn upon.
At October 31, 2012, the Company had outstanding letters of credit of $83.1 million, including $70.1 million under its Credit Facility and $13.0 million collateralized by restricted cash. These letters of credit were issued to secure various financial obligations of the Company including insurance policy deductibles and other claims, land deposits and security to complete improvements in communities in which it is operating. The Company believes it is not probable that any outstanding letters of credit will be drawn upon.
Backlog
At October 31, 2012, the Company had agreements of sale outstanding to deliver 2,569 homes with an aggregate sales value of $1.67 billion.
Mortgage Commitments
The Company’s mortgage subsidiary provides mortgage financing for a portion of the Company’s home closings. For those home buyers to whom the Company’s mortgage subsidiary provides mortgages, it determines whether the home buyer qualifies for the mortgage he or she is seeking based upon information provided by the home buyer and other sources. For those home buyers who qualify, the Company’s mortgage subsidiary provides the home buyer with a mortgage commitment that specifies the terms and conditions of a proposed mortgage loan based upon then-current market conditions. Prior to the actual closing of the home and funding of the mortgage, the home buyer will lock in an interest rate based upon the terms of the commitment. At the time of rate lock, the Company’s mortgage subsidiary agrees to sell the proposed mortgage loan to one of several outside recognized mortgage financing institutions (“investors”) that are willing to honor the terms and conditions, including interest rate, committed to the home buyer. The Company believes that these investors have adequate financial resources to honor their commitments to its mortgage subsidiary.
Information regarding the Company’s mortgage commitments at October 31, 2012 and 2011 is provided in the table below (amounts in thousands).
 
2012
 
2011
Aggregate mortgage loan commitments:
 
 
 
IRLCs
$
111,173

 
$
129,553

Non-IRLCs
456,825

 
306,722

Total
$
567,998

 
$
436,275

Investor commitments to purchase:
 
 
 
IRLCs
$
111,173

 
$
129,553

Mortgage loans receivable
80,697

 
60,680

Total
$
191,870

 
$
190,233


F-40



Rent Expense and Future Rent Payments
The Company leases certain facilities and equipment under non-cancelable operating leases. Rental expense incurred by the Company under these operating leases were (amounts in thousands):
Year ending October 31,
Amount
2012
$
11,183

2011
$
12,405

2010
$
16,583

At October 31, 2012, future minimum rent payments under the Company’s operating leases were (amounts in thousands):
Year ending October 31,
Amount
2013
$
9,207

2014
7,704

2015
6,422

2016
4,686

2017
3,503

Thereafter
5,919

 
$
37,441

16. Other Income - Net
The table below provides the components of other income - net for the years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Interest income
4,677

 
5,210

 
4,370

Income from ancillary businesses
6,607

 
3,734

 
5,871

Gibraltar
4,476

 
1,522

 
(472
)
Management fee income
2,212

 
5,137

 
4,347

Retained customer deposits
3,247

 
2,076

 
11,190

Land sales, net
1,425

 
1,350

 
918

Other
3,277

 
4,374

 
2,089

Total other income - net
25,921

 
23,403

 
28,313

Income from ancillary businesses includes the activity of the Company’s non-core businesses which include its mortgage, title, landscaping, security monitoring, and golf course and country club operations. The table below provides revenues and expenses for the Company's non-core ancillary businesses for the years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Revenue
$
67,137

 
$
60,021

 
$
51,458

Expense
$
60,529

 
$
56,287

 
$
45,587


F-41




17. Information on Geographic Segments
The table below summarizes revenue and income (loss) before income taxes for each of the Company’s geographic segments for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
Revenues
 
Income (loss) before income taxes
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
North
$
513,724

 
$
381,569

 
$
407,723

 
$
71,836

 
$
42,525

 
$
(2,296
)
Mid-Atlantic
564,434

 
499,747

 
488,359

 
67,768

 
57,606

 
33,946

South
366,701

 
285,012

 
264,321

 
18,000

 
(25,936
)
 
(35,193
)
West
437,922

 
309,553

 
334,368

 
39,383

 
(27,113
)
 
(11,895
)
Corporate and other

 

 

 
(84,045
)
 
(76,448
)
 
(101,749
)
Total
$
1,882,781

 
$
1,475,881

 
$
1,494,771

 
$
112,942

 
$
(29,366
)
 
$
(117,187
)
“Corporate and other” is comprised principally of general corporate expenses such as the Offices of the Executive Chairman, the Chief Executive Officer, and the corporate finance, accounting, audit, tax, human resources, risk management, marketing and legal groups, directly expensed interest, offset, in part, by interest income and income from the Company’s ancillary businesses and income from a number of its unconsolidated entities.
Total assets for each of the Company’s geographic segments at October 31, 2012 and 2011 are shown in the table below (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
North
$
1,205,900

 
$
1,060,215

Mid-Atlantic
1,304,798

 
1,160,926

South
821,001

 
760,097

West
913,699

 
650,844

Corporate and other
1,935,646

 
1,423,164

Total
$
6,181,044

 
$
5,055,246

“Corporate and other” is comprised principally of cash and cash equivalents, marketable securities, deferred tax assets and the assets of the Company’s Gibraltar investments, manufacturing facilities and mortgage subsidiary.

F-42



The Company provided for inventory impairment charges and the expensing of costs that it believed not to be recoverable and write-downs of investments in unconsolidated entities (including the Company’s pro-rata share of impairment charges recognized by the unconsolidated entities in which it has an investment) for the years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010, as shown in the table below; the net carrying value of inventory and investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities for each of the Company’s geographic segments at October 31, 2012 and 2011 is also shown (amounts in thousands).
 
Net Carrying Value
 
Impairments
 
At October 31,
 
Year ended October 31,
 
2012
 
2011
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Inventory:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Land controlled for future communities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
North
$
13,196

 
$
19,390

 
$
(881
)
 
$
948

 
$
3,947

Mid-Atlantic
27,249

 
21,592

 
327

 
307

 
(81
)
South
7,724

 
3,812

 
800

 
313

 
(233
)
West
8,131

 
1,787

 
205

 
16,184

 
2,436

 
56,300

 
46,581

 
451

 
17,752

 
6,069

Land owned for future communities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
North
226,082

 
231,085

 

 


 
15,900

Mid-Atlantic
431,620

 
455,818

 
300

 
300

 
9,000

South
141,644

 
125,461

 
918

 
16,700

 
13,950

West
241,027

 
166,781

 

 


 
16,850

 
1,040,373

 
979,145

 
1,218

 
17,000

 
55,700

Operating communities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
North
803,085

 
738,473

 
2,725

 
2,885

 
9,557

Mid-Atlantic
729,739

 
659,081

 
5,500

 
3,700

 
2,100

South
603,239

 
539,582

 
4,245

 
3,800

 
23,444

West
528,451

 
453,861

 
600

 
6,700

 
18,388

 
2,664,514

 
2,390,997

 
13,070

 
17,085

 
53,489

Total
$
3,761,187

 
$
3,416,723

 
$
14,739

 
$
51,837

 
$
115,258

Investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
North
$
142,213

 
$
40,734

 

 

 


South
31,252

 
32,000

 


 
15,170

 

West
116,452

 
17,098

 
(2,311
)
 
25,700

 


Corporate
40,700

 
36,523

 

 

 

Total
$
330,617

 
$
126,355

 
$
(2,311
)
 
$
40,870

 
$


F-43




18. Supplemental Disclosure to Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows
The following are supplemental disclosures to the Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for each of the fiscal years ended October 31, 2012, 2011 and 2010 (amounts in thousands):
 
2012
 
2011
 
2010
Cash flow information:
 
 
 
 
 
Interest paid, net of amount capitalized
$
1,223

 
$
18,666

 
$
34,333

Income tax payment
$
4,264

 


 
$
3,994

Income tax refunds


 
$
154,524

 
$
152,770

Non-cash activity:
 
 
 
 
 
Cost of inventory acquired through seller financing municipal bonds or recorded due to VIE criteria, net
$
26,059

 
$
29,320

 
$
41,276

Cost of inventory acquired under specific performance contracts

 


 
$
(4,889
)
Miscellaneous (decreases) increases to inventory
$
(478
)
 
$
1,781

 
$
1,725

Reclassification of inventory to property, construction and office equipment


 
$
20,005

 
$
18,711

Increase (decrease) in unrecognized losses in defined benefit plans
$
3,108

 
$
2,638

 
$
(867
)
Defined benefit plan amendment
$
575

 

 
$
202

Income tax benefit related to exercise of employee stock options
$
3,885

 

 
$
27,150

Income tax benefit recognized in total comprehensive income
$
1,263

 

 


(Increase) reduction of investments in unconsolidated entities due to increase/reduction in letters of credit or accrued liabilities
$
448

 
$
13,423

 
$
7,679

Transfer of inventory to investment in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate
$
(802
)
 

 


Transfer of inventory to investment in unconsolidated entities
$
5,793

 


 


Reclassification of deferred income from investment in unconsolidated entities to accrued liabilities
$
2,943

 


 

Reversal of litigation costs previously accrued

 


 
$
10,981

Reclassification of stock-based compensation from accrued liabilities to additional paid-in capital

 
$
4,233

 


Unrealized loss on derivative held by equity investee
$
(875
)
 


 


Miscellaneous (decreases) increases to investments in unconsolidated entities
$
(276
)
 
$
(2,212
)
 
$
2,495

Acquisition of Business:
 
 
 
 
 
Fair value of assets purchased
$
149,959

 

 

Liabilities assumed
$
5,213

 

 


Cash paid
$
144,746

 


 



F-44




19. Supplemental Guarantor Information
A 100% - owned subsidiary of the Company, Toll Brothers Finance Corp. (the “Subsidiary Issuer”), has issued the following Senior Notes (amounts in thousands):
 
Original Amount Issued
 
Amount outstanding at October 31, 2012
6.875% Senior Notes due 2012
$
300,000

 
$
59,068

5.95% Senior Notes due 2013
$
250,000

 
$
104,785

4.95% Senior Notes due 2014
$
300,000

 
$
267,960

5.15% Senior Notes due 2015
$
300,000

 
$
300,000

8.91% Senior Notes due 2017
$
400,000

 
$
400,000

6.75% Senior Notes due 2019
$
250,000

 
$
250,000

5.875% Senior Notes due 2022
$
419,876

 
$
419,876

0.50% Exchangeable Senior Notes due 2032
$
287,500

 
$
287,500

The obligations of the Subsidiary Issuer to pay principal, premiums, if any, and interest is guaranteed jointly and severally on a senior basis by the Company and a majority of the Company’s 100% owned home building subsidiaries (the “Guarantor Subsidiaries”). The guarantees are full and unconditional. The Company’s non-home building subsidiaries and several of its home building subsidiaries (the “Non-Guarantor Subsidiaries”) do not guarantee the debt. Separate financial statements and other disclosures concerning the Guarantor Subsidiaries are not presented because management has determined that such disclosures would not be material to investors. Prior to the above described senior debt issuances, the Subsidiary Issuer did not have any operations.
Supplemental consolidating financial information of Toll Brothers, Inc., the Subsidiary Issuer, the Guarantor Subsidiaries, the Non-Guarantor Subsidiaries and the eliminations to arrive at Toll Brothers, Inc. on a consolidated basis is presented below ($ amounts in thousands).

F-45



Consolidating Balance Sheet at October 31, 2012
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
ASSETS
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Cash and cash equivalents

 

 
711,375

 
67,449

 

 
778,824

Marketable securities

 

 
378,858

 
60,210

 

 
439,068

Restricted cash
28,268

 

 
17,561

 
1,447

 

 
47,276

Inventory

 

 
3,527,677

 
233,510

 

 
3,761,187

Property, construction and office equipment, net

 

 
103,206

 
3,008

 

 
106,214

Receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
134

 
15,130

 
80,932

 
68,300

 
(16,181
)
 
148,315

Mortgage loans receivable

 

 

 
86,386

 

 
86,386

Customer deposits held in escrow

 

 
27,312

 
2,267

 

 
29,579

Investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities

 

 
70,145

 
260,472

 

 
330,617

Investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
95,522

 

 
95,522

Investments in and advances to consolidated entities
2,823,052

 
2,092,810

 
(1,173,254
)
 
(632,496
)
 
(3,110,112
)
 

Deferred tax assets, net of valuation allowance
358,056

 

 

 

 

 
358,056

 
3,209,510

 
2,107,940

 
3,743,812

 
246,075

 
(3,126,293
)
 
6,181,044

LIABILITIES AND EQUITY
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Loans payable

 

 
69,393

 
30,424

 

 
99,817

Senior notes

 
2,032,335

 

 

 
48,128

 
2,080,463

Mortgage company warehouse loan

 

 

 
72,664

 

 
72,664

Customer deposits

 

 
136,225

 
6,752

 

 
142,977

Accounts payable

 

 
99,889

 
22

 

 
99,911

Accrued expenses

 
27,476

 
341,233

 
119,244

 
(11,603
)
 
476,350

Income taxes payable
82,991

 

 

 
(2,000
)
 

 
80,991

Total liabilities
82,991

 
2,059,811

 
646,740

 
227,106

 
36,525

 
3,053,173

Equity
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Stockholders’ equity
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Common stock
1,687

 

 
48

 
3,006

 
(3,054
)
 
1,687

Additional paid-in capital
404,418

 
49,400

 


 
1,734

 
(51,134
)
 
404,418

Retained earnings
2,721,397

 
(1,271
)
 
3,101,833

 
8,068

 
(3,108,630
)
 
2,721,397

Treasury stock, at cost
(983
)
 

 

 

 

 
(983
)
Accumulated other comprehensive loss


 

 
(4,809
)
 
(10
)
 


 
(4,819
)
Total stockholders’ equity
3,126,519

 
48,129

 
3,097,072

 
12,798

 
(3,162,818
)
 
3,121,700

Noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
6,171

 

 
6,171

Total equity
3,126,519

 
48,129

 
3,097,072

 
18,969

 
(3,162,818
)
 
3,127,871

 
3,209,510

 
2,107,940

 
3,743,812

 
246,075

 
(3,126,293
)
 
6,181,044



F-46



Consolidating Balance Sheet at October 31, 2011
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
ASSETS
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Cash and cash equivalents

 

 
775,300

 
131,040

 

 
906,340

Marketable securities

 

 
233,572

 

 

 
233,572

Restricted cash

 

 
19,084

 
676

 

 
19,760

Inventory

 

 
2,911,211

 
505,512

 

 
3,416,723

Property, construction and office equipment, net

 

 
77,001

 
22,711

 

 
99,712

Receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets


 
6,768

 
74,980

 
26,067

 
(2,239
)
 
105,576

Mortgage loans receivable

 

 

 
63,175

 

 
63,175

Customer deposits held in escrow

 

 
10,682

 
4,177

 

 
14,859

Investments in and advances to unconsolidated entities

 

 
86,481

 
39,874

 

 
126,355

Investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate


 


 


 
69,174

 


 
69,174

Investments in and advances to consolidated entities
2,694,419

 
1,508,550

 
(727,258
)
 
(477,322
)
 
(2,998,389
)
 

 
2,694,419

 
1,515,318

 
3,461,053

 
385,084

 
(3,000,628
)
 
5,055,246

LIABILITIES AND EQUITY
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Loans payable

 

 
61,994

 
44,562

 

 
106,556

Senior notes

 
1,490,972

 

 

 

 
1,490,972

Mortgage company warehouse loan

 

 

 
57,409

 

 
57,409

Customer deposits

 

 
71,388

 
12,436

 

 
83,824

Accounts payable

 

 
96,645

 
172

 

 
96,817

Accrued expenses

 
24,346

 
320,021

 
178,965

 
(2,281
)
 
521,051

Income taxes payable
108,066

 

 

 
(2,000
)
 

 
106,066

Total liabilities
108,066

 
1,515,318

 
550,048

 
291,544

 
(2,281
)
 
2,462,695

Equity
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Stockholders’ equity
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Common stock
1,687

 

 
3,054

 
2,003

 
(5,057
)
 
1,687

Additional paid-in capital
400,382

 

 
1,366

 
2,734

 
(4,100
)
 
400,382

Retained earnings
2,234,251

 

 
2,909,487

 
82,605

 
(2,992,092
)
 
2,234,251

Treasury stock, at cost
(47,065
)
 

 

 

 

 
(47,065
)
Accumulated other comprehensive loss
(2,902
)
 

 
(2,902
)
 

 
2,902

 
(2,902
)
Total stockholders’ equity
2,586,353

 

 
2,911,005

 
87,342

 
(2,998,347
)
 
2,586,353

Noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
6,198

 

 
6,198

Total equity
2,586,353

 

 
2,911,005

 
93,540

 
(2,998,347
)
 
2,592,551

 
2,694,419

 
1,515,318

 
3,461,053

 
385,084

 
(3,000,628
)
 
5,055,246



F-47



Consolidating Statement of Operations for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2012
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Revenues

 

 
1,880,908

 
79,850

 
(77,977
)
 
1,882,781

Cost of revenues

 

 
1,523,074

 
22,736

 
(13,715
)
 
1,532,095

Selling, general and administrative
95

 
2,965

 
307,292

 
41,055

 
(64,150
)
 
287,257

Interest expense

 
115,141

 


 
576

 
(115,717
)
 

 
95

 
118,106

 
1,830,366

 
64,367

 
(193,582
)
 
1,819,352

Income (loss) from operations
(95
)
 
(118,106
)
 
50,542

 
15,483

 
115,605

 
63,429

Other:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
16,035

 
7,557

 

 
23,592

Other income - net
56

 
116,835

 
19,569

 
3,795

 
(114,334
)
 
25,921

Income (loss) from consolidated subsidiaries
112,981

 

 
26,835

 

 
(139,816
)
 

Income before income tax benefit (provision)
112,942

 
(1,271
)
 
112,981

 
26,835

 
(138,545
)
 
112,942

Income tax (benefit) provision
(374,204
)
 

 
25,805

 
6,129

 
(31,934
)
 
(374,204
)
Net income
487,146

 
(1,271
)
 
87,176

 
20,706

 
(106,611
)
 
487,146

Consolidating Statement of Operations for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2011
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Revenues

 

 
1,445,148

 
105,364

 
(74,631
)
 
1,475,881

Cost of revenues

 

 
1,217,512

 
57,617

 
(14,359
)
 
1,260,770

Selling, general and administrative
137

 
1,345

 
270,605

 
42,131

 
(52,863
)
 
261,355

Interest expense

 
103,604

 
1,504

 

 
(103,604
)
 
1,504

 
137

 
104,949

 
1,489,621

 
99,748

 
(170,826
)
 
1,523,629

(Loss) income from operations
(137
)
 
(104,949
)
 
(44,473
)
 
5,616

 
96,195

 
(47,748
)
Other:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
(Loss) income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
6,129

 
(7,323
)
 

 
(1,194
)
Other income (loss) - net

 
108,776

 
14,489

 
(3,667
)
 
(96,195
)
 
23,403

Expenses related to early retirement of debt

 
(3,827
)
 


 

 

 
(3,827
)
Loss from consolidated subsidiaries
(29,229
)
 

 
(5,374
)
 

 
34,603

 

Loss before income tax benefit
(29,366
)
 

 
(29,229
)
 
(5,374
)
 
34,603

 
(29,366
)
Income tax benefit
(69,161
)
 

 
(68,837
)
 
(12,656
)
 
81,493

 
(69,161
)
Net income
39,795

 

 
39,608

 
7,282

 
(46,890
)
 
39,795








F-48



Consolidating Statement of Operations for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2010
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Revenues

 

 
1,468,678

 
77,570

 
(51,477
)
 
1,494,771

Cost of revenues

 

 
1,325,092

 
63,279

 
(11,813
)
 
1,376,558

Selling, general and administrative
77

 
1,365

 
261,314

 
22,583

 
(22,115
)
 
263,224

Interest expense

 
106,411

 
22,751

 

 
(106,411
)
 
22,751

 
77

 
107,776

 
1,609,157

 
85,862

 
(140,339
)
 
1,662,533

Loss from operations
(77
)
 
(107,776
)
 
(140,479
)
 
(8,292
)
 
88,862

 
(167,762
)
Other:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
5,905

 
17,565

 

 
23,470

Other income - net

 
108,520

 
1,766

 
6,889

 
(88,862
)
 
28,313

Expenses related to early retirement of debt

 
(744
)
 
(464
)
 

 

 
(1,208
)
(Loss) income from consolidated subsidiaries
(117,110
)
 

 
16,162

 

 
100,948

 

(Loss) income before income tax benefit
(117,187
)
 

 
(117,110
)
 
16,162

 
100,948

 
(117,187
)
Income tax (benefit) provision
(113,813
)
 

 
(124,695
)
 
15,735

 
108,960

 
(113,813
)
Net (loss) income
(3,374
)
 

 
7,585

 
427

 
(8,012
)
 
(3,374
)

F-49



Consolidating Statement of Cash Flows for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2012
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Cash flow (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net income (loss)
487,146

 
(1,271
)
 
87,176

 
20,706

 
(106,611
)
 
487,146

Adjustments to reconcile net income (loss) to net cash (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Depreciation and amortization
22

 
5,036

 
18,459

 
340

 
(1,271
)
 
22,586

Stock-based compensation
15,575

 

 

 

 

 
15,575

Recovery of investment in unconsolidated entities

 

 
(2,311
)
 

 

 
(2,311
)
Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
(5,776
)
 

 

 

 

 
(5,776
)
Income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
(13,724
)
 
(7,557
)
 

 
(21,281
)
Distributions of earnings from unconsolidated entities

 

 
5,258

 

 

 
5,258

Income from non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
(12,444
)
 

 
(12,444
)
Deferred tax benefit
41,810

 

 

 

 

 
41,810

Deferred tax valuation allowances
(394,718
)
 

 

 

 

 
(394,718
)
Inventory impairments and write-offs

 

 
14,739

 

 

 
14,739

Change in fair value of mortgage loans receivable and derivative instruments

 

 

 
(670
)
 

 
(670
)
Gain on sale of marketable securities

 

 
(40
)
 

 

 
(40
)
Changes in operating assets and liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 


Increase in inventory

 

 
(111,788
)
 
(84,160
)
 

 
(195,948
)
Origination of mortgage loans

 

 

 
(651,618
)
 

 
(651,618
)
Sale of mortgage loans

 

 

 
629,397

 

 
629,397

Decrease (increase) in restricted cash
(28,268
)
 

 
1,523

 
(771
)
 

 
(27,516
)
(Increase) decrease in receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
(127,150
)
 
(585,591
)
 
190,977

 
375,007

 
112,835

 
(33,922
)
Increase (decrease) in customer deposits

 

 
48,157

 
(3,774
)
 

 
44,383

(Decrease) increase in accounts payable and accrued expenses
(2,584
)
 
3,130

 
5,363

 
(59,493
)
 
(4,953
)
 
(58,537
)
Decrease in current income taxes payable
(25,075
)
 


 


 


 


 
(25,075
)
Net cash (used in) provided by operating activities
(39,018
)
 
(578,696
)
 
243,789

 
204,963

 

 
(168,962
)
Cash flow used in investing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 


Purchase of property and equipment — net

 

 
(13,706
)
 
(789
)
 

 
(14,495
)
Purchase of marketable securities

 

 
(519,737
)
 
(60,221
)
 

 
(579,958
)
Sale and redemption of marketable securities

 

 
368,253

 

 

 
368,253

Investment in and advances to unconsolidated entities

 

 
(3,637
)
 
(213,523
)
 

 
(217,160
)
Return of investments in unconsolidated entities

 

 
32,659

 
5,709

 

 
38,368

Investment in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
(30,090
)
 

 
(30,090
)
Return of investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
16,707

 

 
16,707

Acquisition of a business


 


 
(144,746
)
 


 


 
(144,746
)
Net cash used in investing activities

 

 
(280,914
)
 
(282,207
)
 

 
(563,121
)
Cash flow provide by (used in) financing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net proceeds from issuance of senior notes

 
578,696

 

 

 

 
578,696

Proceeds from loans payable

 

 

 
1,002,934

 

 
1,002,934

Principal payments of loans payable

 

 
(26,800
)
 
(989,281
)
 

 
(1,016,081
)
Proceeds from stock-based benefit plans
33,747

 

 

 

 

 
33,747

Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
5,776

 


 


 


 


 
5,776

Purchase of treasury stock
(505
)
 

 

 

 

 
(505
)
Net cash provided by (used in) financing activities
39,018

 
578,696

 
(26,800
)
 
13,653

 

 
604,567

Net decrease in cash and cash equivalents

 

 
(63,925
)
 
(63,591
)
 

 
(127,516
)
Cash and cash equivalents, beginning of year

 

 
775,300

 
131,040

 

 
906,340

Cash and cash equivalents, end of year

 

 
711,375

 
67,449

 

 
778,824


F-50



Consolidating Statement of Cash Flows for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2011
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Cash flow provided by (used in) operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net income
39,795

 

 
39,608

 
7,282

 
(46,890
)
 
39,795

Adjustments to reconcile net income to net cash provided by (used in) operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Depreciation and amortization

 
3,210

 
19,343

 
589

 

 
23,142

Stock-based compensation
12,494

 

 

 

 

 
12,494

Impairment of investments in unconsolidated entities

 

 
15,170

 
25,700

 

 
40,870

Income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
(21,299
)
 
(18,377
)
 

 
(39,676
)
Distributions of earnings from unconsolidated entities

 

 
12,747

 
(666
)
 

 
12,081

Income from non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
(5,113
)
 

 
(5,113
)
Deferred tax benefit
(18,188
)
 

 

 

 

 
(18,188
)
Deferred tax valuation allowances
18,188

 

 

 

 

 
18,188

Inventory impairments and write-offs

 

 
51,837

 

 

 
51,837

Change in fair value of mortgage loans receivable and derivative instruments

 

 

 
475

 

 
475

Expenses related to early retirement of debt

 
3,827

 

 

 

 
3,827

Changes in operating assets and liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 


Increase in inventory

 

 
(89,869
)
 
(125,869
)
 

 
(215,738
)
Origination of mortgage loans

 

 

 
(630,294
)
 

 
(630,294
)
Sale of mortgage loans

 

 

 
659,610

 

 
659,610

Decrease (increase) in restricted cash

 

 
41,822

 
(676
)
 

 
41,146

(Increase) decrease in receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
(116,370
)
 
53,557

 
(267,889
)
 
274,151

 
45,029

 
(11,522
)
Increase in customer deposits

 

 
1,677

 
11,498

 

 
13,175

(Decrease) increase in accounts payable and accrued expenses
2,287

 
(1,757
)
 
80,257

 
(111,272
)
 
1,861

 
(28,624
)
Decrease in income tax refund recoverable
141,590

 

 

 

 

 
141,590

Decrease in current income taxes payable
(56,225
)
 


 


 


 


 
(56,225
)
Net cash provided by (used in) operating activities
23,571

 
58,837

 
(116,596
)
 
87,038

 

 
52,850

Cash flow used in investing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Purchase of property and equipment — net

 

 
(6,658
)
 
(2,895
)
 

 
(9,553
)
Purchase of marketable securities

 

 
(452,864
)
 

 

 
(452,864
)
Sale and redemption of marketable securities

 

 
408,831

 

 

 
408,831

Investment in and advances to unconsolidated entities

 

 
(70
)
 
(62
)
 

 
(132
)
Return of investments in unconsolidated entities

 

 
23,859

 
19,450

 

 
43,309

Investment in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
(66,867
)
 

 
(66,867
)
Return of investments in non-performing loan portfolios and foreclosed real estate

 

 

 
2,806

 

 
2,806

Net cash used in investing activities

 

 
(26,902
)
 
(47,568
)
 

 
(74,470
)
Cash flow used in financing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Proceeds from loans payable

 

 

 
921,251

 

 
921,251

Principal payments of loans payable

 

 
(11,589
)
 
(941,032
)
 

 
(952,621
)
Redemption of senior notes

 
(58,837
)
 

 

 

 
(58,837
)
Proceeds from stock-based benefit plans
25,531

 

 

 

 

 
25,531

Purchase of treasury stock
(49,102
)
 

 

 

 

 
(49,102
)
Change in noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
2,678

 

 
2,678

Net cash used in financing activities
(23,571
)
 
(58,837
)
 
(11,589
)
 
(17,103
)
 

 
(111,100
)
Net (decrease) increase in cash and cash equivalents

 

 
(155,087
)
 
22,367

 

 
(132,720
)
Cash and cash equivalents, beginning of year

 

 
930,387

 
108,673

 

 
1,039,060

Cash and cash equivalents, end of year

 

 
775,300

 
131,040

 

 
906,340


F-51



Consolidating Statement of Cash Flows for the fiscal year ended October 31, 2010
 
Toll
Brothers,
Inc.
 
Subsidiary
Issuer
 
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Non-
Guarantor
Subsidiaries
 
Eliminations
 
Consolidated
Cash flow (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Net (loss) income
(3,374
)
 

 
7,585

 
427

 
(8,012
)
 
(3,374
)
Adjustments to reconcile net (loss) income to net cash (used in) provided by operating activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Depreciation and amortization
28

 
3,262

 
15,961

 
793

 

 
20,044

Stock-based compensation
11,677

 

 

 

 

 
11,677

Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
(4,954
)
 

 

 

 

 
(4,954
)
Income from unconsolidated entities

 

 
(5,773
)
 
(17,697
)
 

 
(23,470
)
Distributions of earnings from unconsolidated entities

 

 
10,297

 

 

 
10,297

Deferred tax benefit
60,697

 

 

 

 

 
60,697

Deferred tax valuation allowances
(60,697
)
 

 

 

 

 
(60,697
)
Inventory impairments and write-offs

 

 
107,508

 
7,750

 

 
115,258

Change in fair value of mortgage loans receivable and derivative instruments

 

 

 
(970
)
 

 
(970
)
Expenses related to early retirement of debt

 
744

 
464

 

 

 
1,208

Changes in operating assets and liabilities
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 


Increase in inventory

 

 
(16,730
)
 
(123,614
)
 

 
(140,344
)
Origination of mortgage loans

 

 

 
(628,154
)
 

 
(628,154
)
Sale of mortgage loans

 

 

 
579,221

 

 
579,221

Increase in restricted cash

 

 
(60,906
)
 

 

 
(60,906
)
(Increase) decrease in receivables, prepaid expenses and other assets
(50,136
)
 
36,330

 
(143,435
)
 
144,320

 
9,806

 
(3,115
)
Decrease in customer deposits

 

 
(9,713
)
 
(5,469
)
 

 
(15,182
)
(Decrease) increase in accounts payable and accrued expenses
(274
)
 
5,778

 
(133,422
)
 
91,114

 
(1,794
)
 
(38,598
)
Decrease in income tax refund recoverable
20,250

 

 

 

 

 
20,250

Increase in current income taxes payable
14,828

 


 


 


 


 
14,828

Net cash (used in) provided by operating activities
(11,955
)
 
46,114

 
(228,164
)
 
47,721

 

 
(146,284
)
Cash flow used in investing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Purchase of property and equipment — net

 

 
(4,750
)
 
(80
)
 

 
(4,830
)
Purchase of marketable securities

 

 
(157,962
)
 

 

 
(157,962
)
Sale and redemption of marketable securities

 

 
60,000

 

 

 
60,000

Investment in and advances to unconsolidated entities

 

 
(28,493
)
 
(29,793
)
 

 
(58,286
)
Return of investments in unconsolidated entities

 

 
9,696

 

 

 
9,696

Net cash used in investing activities

 

 
(121,509
)
 
(29,873
)
 

 
(151,382
)
Cash flow (used in) provided by financing activities:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Proceeds from loans payable

 

 

 
927,233

 

 
927,233

Principal payments of loans payable

 

 
(372,419
)
 
(944,095
)
 

 
(1,316,514
)
Redemption of senior subordinated notes

 

 
(47,872
)
 

 

 
(47,872
)
Redemption of senior notes

 
(46,114
)
 

 

 

 
(46,114
)
Proceeds from stock-based benefit plans
7,589

 

 

 

 

 
7,589

Excess tax benefits from stock-based compensation
4,954

 


 


 


 


 
4,954

Purchase of treasury stock
(588
)
 

 

 

 

 
(588
)
Change in noncontrolling interest

 

 

 
320

 

 
320

Net cash (used in) provided by financing activities
11,955

 
(46,114
)
 
(420,291
)
 
(16,542
)
 

 
(470,992
)
Net (decrease) increase in cash and cash equivalents

 

 
(769,964
)
 
1,306

 

 
(768,658
)
Cash and cash equivalents, beginning of year

 

 
1,700,351

 
107,367

 

 
1,807,718

Cash and cash equivalents, end of year

 

 
930,387

 
108,673

 

 
1,039,060


F-52




20. Summary Consolidated Quarterly Financial Data (Unaudited)
The table below provides summary income statement data for each quarter of fiscal 2012 and 2011 (amounts in thousands, except per share data).
 
Three Months Ended,
 
October 31
 
July 31
 
April 30
 
January 31
Fiscal 2012:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Revenue
$
632,826

 
$
554,319

 
$
373,681

 
$
321,955

Gross profit
$
127,088

 
$
106,391

 
$
66,860

 
$
50,347

Income (loss) before income taxes
$
60,749

 
$
42,952

 
$
15,649

 
$
(6,408
)
Net income (loss)
$
411,417

 
$
61,643

 
$
16,872

 
$
(2,786
)
Income (loss) per share (1)
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
$
2.44

 
$
0.37

 
$
0.10

 
$
(0.02
)
Diluted
$
2.35

 
$
0.36

 
$
0.10

 
$
(0.02
)
Weighted-average number of shares
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
168,416

 
167,664

 
166,994

 
166,311

Diluted (2)
174,775

 
170,229

 
168,503

 
166,311

 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Fiscal 2011:
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Revenue
$
427,785

 
$
394,305

 
$
319,675

 
$
334,116

Gross profit
$
65,281

 
$
54,358

 
$
43,321

 
$
52,151

Income (loss) before income taxes
$
15,277

 
$
3,888

 
$
(31,484
)
 
$
(17,047
)
Net income (loss)
$
15,043

 
$
42,108

 
$
(20,773
)
 
$
3,417

Income (loss) per share (1)
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
$
0.09

 
$
0.25

 
$
(0.12
)
 
$
0.02

Diluted
$
0.09

 
$
0.25

 
$
(0.12
)
 
$
0.02

Weighted-average number of shares
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
Basic
166,896

 
168,075

 
166,910

 
166,677

Diluted (2)
167,525

 
169,338

 
166,910

 
168,121

(1)
Due to rounding, the sum of the quarterly earnings per share amounts may not equal the reported earnings per share for the year.
(2)
For the three months ended January 31, 2012 and April 30, 2011, there were no common stock equivalents used in the calculation of diluted loss per share because the Company reported a net loss for each period, and any common stock equivalents would be anti-dilutive.


F-53